Srimad-Bhagavatam Tenth Canto Volume 1
Srimad-Bhagavatam Tenth Canto Volume 1
Srimad-Bhagavatam Tenth Canto Volume 1
BHAGAVATAM
Snmad-Bhagavatam, an epic philosophical and
literary classic, holds a prominent position in
India's voluminous written wisdom. The timeless
wisdom of India is expressed in the Vedas, ancient
Sanskrit texts that touch upon all fields of human
knowledge. Originally preserved through oral trdi
tion, the Vedas were first put into writing by Srila
V yasadeva, the "literary incarnation of God." After
compiling the Vedas, Srila V yasadeva was inspired
by his spiritual master, to present their profound
essence in the form of Snmad-Bhagavatam. Known
a,s "the ripened fruit of the tree of Vedic literature,"
Srimad-Bhagavatam
Bhagavatam to
rajar$i
(saintly
King
Parikit and
Sukadeva
Snmad-Bhagavatam.
Bhagavatam is the only complete
SRIMAD
BHAGAVATAM
of
KSf':-JA-DVAIPAYANA VYASA
s;ltsN;:a:1 fkltffi'UMwt
'A141iG:Fcl@r$l4:J:
3lml m qi mr:
II
ye 'nye 'ravindaa vimukta-mtlninas
tvayy asta-bhavad aviSuddha-buddhaya
aruhya krcchrer;w. pararh padam tata
patanty adho 'nadrta-ymad-arighraya
(p. 172)
BOOKS by
His Divine Grace
A. C. Bhaktivedanta Swami Prabhupada
hagavad-gita As It Is
*imad-Bhagavatam, Cantos 1-10 (50 Vols.)
Sri Caitanya-caritam:rta (17 Vols.)
Teachings of Lord Caitanya
The Nectar of Devotion
The Nectar of Instruction
Sri lsopani![!ad
Easy Journey to Other Planets
J(:r![!Qa Consciousness: The Topmost Yoga System
J(:r![!Qa, the Supreme Personality of Godhead (3 Vols.)
Perfect Questions, Perfect Answers
Dialectical Spiritualism-A Vedic View of Western Philosophy
Teachings of Lord Kapila, the Son of Devahu.ti
Transcendental Teachings of Prahlad Maharaja
J(:r![!Qa, the Reservoir of Pleasure
Life Comes from Life
The Perfection of Yoga
Beyond Birth and Death
On the Way to J(:r![!Qa
Geetar-gan (Bengali)
Raja-vidya: The King of Knowledge
Elevation to J(:r![!Qa Consciousness
Krsna Consciousness: The Matchless Gift
Bk to Godhead Magazine (Founder)
A
SRIMAD
BHAGAVATAM
Tenth Canto
"The Summum Bonum"
First Printing,
BL1135.P7A22 1972
ISBN 0-912776-97-8
73-169353
Table of Contents
re
Introduction
xm
CHAPTER ONE
Chapter Summary
13
13
17
21
27
32
38
45
51
57
64
67
74
80
85
93
97
CHAPTER TWO
117
Srimad-Bhigavatam
vi
Chapter Summary
117
120
127
131
137
144
149
154
162
168
173
180
Mantra
185
194
199
CHAPTER THREE
201
Chapter Summary
201
204
211
215
223
229
233
239
243
Table of Contents
vu
249
256
264
269
273
CHAPTER FOUR
275
Chapter Summary
275
277
281
287
292
298
305
311
317
CHAPTER FIVE
319
Chapter Summary
319
320
326
332
337
342
SrimadBhigavatam
viii
Appendixes
349
The Author
351
References
353
Glossary
355
361
365
General Index
373
Preface
We must know the present need of human society. And what is that
need? Human society is no longer bounded by geographical limits to par
ticular countries or communities. Human society is broader than in the
Middle Ages, and the world tendency is toward one state or one human
S nmad
Bhiigavatam, are based more or less on the oneness of the entire human
society. The ideals of spiritual communism, according to
society, nay, of the entire energy of living beings. The need is felt by
great thinkers to make this a successful ideology.
Srimad-Bhiigavatam
will fill this need in human society. It begins, therefore, with the apho
rism of Vedanta philosophy
a common cause.
Human society, at the present moment, is not in the darkness of
oblivion. It has made rapid progress in the field of material comforts,
education and economic development throughout the entire world. But
there is a pinprick somewhere in the social body at large, and therefore
there are large-scale quarrels, even over less important issues. There is
need of a clue as to how humanity can _become one in peace, friendship
and prosperity with a common cause.
Srimad-Bhagavatam
is merged to rest. Material science has tried to find the ultimate source
Bhagavatam.
Srimad-Bhagavatam is the transcendental science not only for know
ing the ultimate source of everything but also for knowing our relation
with Him and our duty towards perfection of the human society on the
that the reader will be sufficiently educated to defend himself from the
onslaught of atheists. Over and above this, the reader will be able to con
highest state of God realization. The only qualification one needs to study
The reading matter is so arranged with its original Sanskrit text, its
sure to become a God-realized soul at the end of finishing the first nine
cantos.
The Tenth Canto is distinct from the first nine cantos because it deals
Sri Knn,ta . One will be unable to capture the effects of the Tenth Canto
without going through the first nine cantos. The book is complete in
twelve cantos, each independent, but it is good for all to read them in
(1.5.11):
tad-oog-visargo janatagha-viplavo
yasmin prati-slokam abaddhavaty api
Introduction
just after the departure of Lord r;ta to His own abode, accompanied by
religion: knowledge, etc. Persons who have lost their vision due to the
dense darkness of ignorance in the age of Kali shall get light from this
Pura'l)a." (Srimad-Bhagavatam
1.3.43)
Sanskrit texts that touch upon all fields of human knowledge. Originally
preserved through oral traition, the Vedas were first put into writing
five thousand years ago by Srila Vyasadeva, the "literary incarnation of
God." After compiling the Vedas, Vyasadeva set forth their essence in
the aphorisms
known
as
Vedanta-siitras. Srimad-Bhagavatam is
Vyasadeva's commentary on his own Vedanta-siitras. It was written in
the maturity of his spiritual life under the direction of Narada Muni, his
spiritual master. Referred to as "the ripened fruit of the tree of Vedic
literature," Srimad-Bhagavatam is the most complete and authoritative
Delhi). Maharaja Parikit was the emperor of the world and was a great
rajari (saintly king). Having received a warning that he would die
within a week, he renounced his entire kingdom and retired to the bank
am
all persons, and especially for one who is about to die. Please let me know
what a man should hear, chant, remember and worship, and also what he
nature of the self to the origin of the universe, held the assembled sages
xiii
Srimad-Bhagavatam
xw
in rapt attention continuously for the seven days leading to the King's
death. The sage Suta Gosvami, who was prsent on the bank of the
Ganges when Sukadeva Gosvami first recited Snmad-Bhagavatam, later
Kali. In response to the sages' request that he speak the essence of Vedic
wisdom, Suta Gosvami repeated from memory the entire eighteen thou
Maharaja Parikit.
Saunaka J:ti, the spokesman for the sages gathered at NaimiaraQya. One
therefore simultaneously hears two dialogues: one between Maharaja
Parikit and Sukadeva Gosvami on the bank of the Ganges, and another
the history of the Bhagavatam, the reader will easily be able to follow its
candy-wherever you taste it, you will find it equally sweet and
relishable. Therefore, to taste the sweetness of the Bhagavatam, one may
begin
the First Canto and then proceed through the Bhagavatam, volume after
Introduction
XV
Bhiigavatam.
Bhiigavatam to be a
PLATE ONE
Lord Brahmii, Lord Siva and all the other demigods, having heard of
Brahmii heard the words of Lord ViQU vibrating in the sky. Thus he told
the demigods: "0 demigods, hear from me the order of the Supreme
Person, and execute it attentively without delay. The Supreme Per
sonality of Godhead, Sri K{Qa, who has full potency, will personally ap
pear as the son of Vasudeva. For as long as the Lord moves on earth to
diminish its burden by His own potency in the form of time, all of you
in the family of the Yadus, and your wives should also appear in that
dynasty. The foremost manifestation of K{Qa is Sankara.Q.a, the origin
(pp. 42-50)
PLATE TWO
A, the newly married Vasudeva and Devaki were ready to start for
(pp. 58-61)
PLATE THREE
Devaki kept within herself the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the
cause of all causes, the foundation of the entire cosmos, but because she
was under arrest in the house of Kamsa, she appeared like the flames of a
fire covered by the walls of a pot, or like a person who has knowledge but
cause Lord Qa was within her womb, Devaki illuminated the entire
atmosphere in the place where she was confined. At this time Lord
Brahma and Lord Siva, accompanied by great sages like Narada, Devala
and Vyasa, and by other demigods like lndra, Candra and VaruQa, in
visibly approached the room of Devaki. There they all joined in offering
(pp. 143-154)
PLATE FOUR
The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Vi1,1u, who is situated in the
core of everyone's heart, appeared from the heart of Devaki in the dense
darkness of night, like the full moon rising on the eastern horizon. The
newborn child had very wonderful lotuslike eyes and bore in His four
hands the four weapons conchshell, disc, club and lotus. On His chest
was the mark of
Srivatsa
Vasudeva could understand that this child was the Supreme Personality
of Godhead, Naraya1,1a. Having concluded this without a doubt, he be
came fearless. Bowing down with folded hands, he offered prayers to the
child, who illuminated His birthplace by His natural influence. Next,
Vasudeva's wife Devaki offered her prayers. The Lord, being very
pleased by the prayers of His parents, responded, "0 My dear mother
and father, I appeared twice before as your son because I found no one
else as highly elevated as you in simplicity and other good qualities. Both
of you constantly think of Me as your son, but you always know that I am
the Supreme Personality of Godhead. By thus thinking of Me constantly
with love and affection, you will achieve the highest perfection: return
ing home, back to Godhead." Mter thus instructing His father and
mother, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, 1,1a, transformed Him
self into His original form as a small human child.
(pp. 208-265)
PLATE FIVE
By the influence of Lord :Kr?Qa's internal potency, Yogamaya, all the
doorkeepers of Kamsa's prison house fell fast asleep, their senses unable
to work, and the other inhabitants of the house also fell deeply asleep.
When the sun rises, the darkness automatically disappears; similarly,
when Vasudeva, carrying the child :Kr?Qa, appeared before the closed
doors, they opened automatically, although they had been strongly
pinned with iron and locked with iron chains. Since the clouds in the sky
were mildly thundering and showering, Ananta-naga, an expansion of
the Supreme Personality of Godhead, followed Vasudeva, beginning
from the door, with hoods expanded to protect Vasudeva and the tran
scendental child. Because of constant rain sent by the demigod lndra, the
River Yamuna was filled with deep water, foaming about with fiercely
whirling waves. But as the great Indian Ocean had formerly given way to
Lord Ramacandra by allowing Him to construct a bridge, the River
Yamuna gave way to Vasudeva and allowed him to cross.
(pp. 269-270)
PLATE SEV EN
Nanda Maharaja was naturally very magnanimous, and when Lord Sri
after properly bathing and purifying himself and dressing himself prop
erly, he invited brahmar:tas who knew how to recite Vedic mantras. After
ranged to have the Vedic birth ceremony celebrated for his newborn
child according to the rules and regulations, and he also arranged for the
worship of the demigods and forefathers. The experts in reciting old
families, and general reciters all chanted, while singers sang and many
kinds of musical instruments, like bheris and dundubhis, played in ac
companiment. All the cowherd men, dressed very opulently with valu
able ornaments, coats and turbans, approached the newborn l).a with
gopi wives
of the
cowherd men were very pleased to hear that mother Yasoda had given
birth to a son, and after decorating themselves very nicely with proper
dresses, ornaments, black ointment for the eyes, and so on, they hurried
to Nanda Maharaja's house. Offering blessings to the newborn child, the
wives and daughters of the cowherd men said, "May You become the
King of Vraja and long maintain all its inhabitants." They then sprinkled
a mixture of tumeric powder, oil and water upon the birthless Supreme
(pp. 320-330)
In Mathura, India, this tem ple marks Kr$1Ja-janmasthana, the site of Lord Krl).a's appearance in this world.
eagerness to learn about the incarnation of Lord l<r!?I}.a, and it also tells
how Kamsa killed the six sons of Devaki because of his fear of being
killed by her eighth child. The Second Chapter contains forty-two verses,
describing the entra_nce of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, l<r!?I}.a,
into the womb of Devaki to fulfill His mission of killing Kamsa. When
Lord l<r!?I}.a was within Devaki's womb, all the demigods, headed by
Brahma, offered prayers to the Lord. The Third Chapter contains fifty
is. The Lord's father and mother, understanding the Lord's appearance,
offered prayers. Fearing Kamsa, the Lord's father brought the child from
friend Vasudeva, returns to Gokula and on the way sees the dead body of
the Putana demoness and is astonished at her having been killed by
l<r!?J}.a. The Seventh Chapter, which contains thirty-seven verses, de
showed within His mouth the entire cosmic manifestation. In the Eighth
Chapter there are fifty-two verses, which describe Gargamuni's per
the ground, trying to walk with Their small legs, and stealing butter and
breaking the pots. This chapter also describes the vision of the universal
form.
l<r!?I}.a disturbed His mother while she was churning butter. Because she
Srimad-Bhagavatam
left Kr!i!Qa to see to the stove, where the milk was boiling, and did not
allow Him to suck her breast, Kr!i!Qa was very angry and broke a pot of
yogurt. To chastise her naughty child, mother Yasoda wanted to bind
Him with rope, but every time she tried she failed because of a shortage
of rope when the time came to knot it. In the Tenth Chapter there are
forty-three verses. This chapter describes how Kr!i!Qa, as Damodara,
caused the twin Yamalarjuna trees to fall and how the two demigods
within the trees were delivered by the mercy of Kr!i!Qa. In the Eleventh
Chapter there are fifty-nine verses. This chapter describes hpw Nanda
Maharaja released Kr!i!Qa from the ropes, how Kr!i!Qa showed His mercy to
a fruit seller while exchanging grains for fruit, and how Nanda Maharaja
and others decided to leave Gokula for Vndavana, where Kr!i!Qa killed
Vatsasura and Bakasura.
Chapter
Twelve
contains
forty-four
verses,
describing
Kr!i!Qa's
pastimes with the cowherd boys in the forest and the killing of the
demon named Aghasura. Chapter Thirteen contains sixty-four verses,
describing how Brah!lla stole Kr!i!Qa's calves and His friends, the cowherd
boys. Kr!i!Qa expanded His pastimes for one year, representing Himself as
the calves and boys in forms exactly like their own. In this way He
bewildered Brahma, who at last surrendered when his illusion was over.
The Fourteenth Chapter contains sixty-one verses. In this chapter,
Brahma offers prayers to Kr!i!Qa after fully understanding Him to be the
Supreme Personality of Godhead. The Fifteenth Chapter contains fifty
two verses. This chapter describes how Kr!i!Qa entered Talavana Forest
with Balarama, how Balarama killed Dhenukasura, and how Kr!i!Qa pro
tected the cowherd boys and cows from the poisonous effects of Kaliya.
The Sixteenth Chapter contains sixty-seven verses. This chapter de
scribes the chastisement of Kaliya by Kr!i!Qa, and it also describes the
prayers offered by Kaliya's wives. In the Seventeenth Chapter there are
twenty-five verses. This chapter describes why Kaliya entered the River
Yamuna after leaving his home, Nagalaya, one of the dvipas, which ac
cording to some corresponds to the Fiji Islands. This chapter also de
scribes how GaruQa was cursed by Saubhari !iii, how the cowherd boys,
Kr!i!Qa's friends, were enlivened when Kr!i!Qa emerged from the Yamuna,
and how Kr!i!Qa stopped the forest fire and saved the sleeping inhabitants
of Vraja.
The Eighteenth Chapter contains thirty-two verses, giving a descrip-
tion of 1,1a and Balarama, Their picnics within the forest, the climate
of Vrndavana in the summer and the spring, and Lord Balarama's killipg
of Pralambasura. Chapter Nineteen contains sixteen verses, describing
1,1a's entering the forest known as Munjara1,1ya, saving the cowherd
boys and cows from the forest fire, and bringing them to Bha1,1}iravana.
enjoyment of Balarama and 1,1a in the forest with the cowherd boys
during the rainy season, and it gives various instructions through
analogies concerning the rainy season and autumn.
Chapter Twenty-one contains twenty verses, describing how I,la en
tered the forest of Vrndavana in the autumn, playing His :flute, and how
He attracted the gopis, who were singing His glories. The Twenty-second
Chapter contains thirty-eight verses, describing how the gopis prayed to
the goddess Katyayani to obtain 1,1a as their husband and how K:r1,1a
later stole the garments of the gopis while the gopis were bathing in the
Yamuna. The Twenty-third Chapter contains fifty-two verses, describing
how the cowherd boys, being very hung,ry, followed 1,1a's directions
by begging some food for Him and themselves from brahmar:ws engaged
in performing yajfias. The brahmar:ws refused to give food to 1,1a and
Balarama, although the boys begged for it, but the wives of the
brahma7J-as agreed, and therefore 1,1a bestowed His mercy upon them.
Srimad-Bhagavatam
verses. In this chapter KrI).a saves His father, Nanda Maharaja, from the
situated.
how KrI).a talked to the gopis before performing the rasa-lila and how,
after the beginning of the rasa-lila, KrI).a disappeared from the scene.
being separated from KrI).a, went mad and began to wander in the forest
in search of Him. The gopis met Srimati Radharal).i, the daughter of King
Vabhanu, and they all wandered on the bank of the Yamuna searching
for KrI).a. Chapter Thirty-one contains nineteen verses, describing how
the bereaved gopis waited in great anxiety to meet KrI).a. Chapter
among the gopis, who are fully satisfied in ecstatic love for Him. Chapter
in multiforms in the midst of the gopis, with whom He dances in the rasa
dance. Then they all bathe in the River Yamuna. Also in this chapter,
the riisa-lilii.
who had been a demigod named Vidyadhara but was cursed by Ailgira
i. KrI).a rescued His father and saved this demigod simultaneously.
Kamsa that both Rama and KrI).a were sons of Vasudeva. Because of this
disclosure, Kamsa arranged to kill both Rama and KrI).a. He sent his
assistant Kesi to Vndavana, and later he sent Akrftra to bring Rama and
this chapter KrI).a kills the Kesi demon, Narada worships KrI).a by nar
rating
chapter
tains fifty-seven verses. Thi chapter describes how Rama and l(rQa,
having been invited by Kamsa, started for Mathura. While They were
ready 'on the chariot, the gopis began to cry, and l(r1,1a sent His
messenger to pacify them. Thus He was able to travel toward Mathura.
On the way, Almira was shown the entire Vi1,1uloka within the water of
the Yamuna.
Chapter Forty contains thirty verses, in which the prayers of Akriira
are described. Chapter Forty-one, which contains fifty-two verses, de
scribes the entrance of Rama and l(r1,1a into the city of Mathura, where
the ladies were very jubilant to see these two brothers. l(r1,1a killed a
washerman, glorified Sudama and gave Sudama His benediction. Chapter
Forty-two, which contains thirty-eight verses, describes how l(r1,1a
delivered Kubja and how He broke Kamsa's gigantic bow and killed its
caretakers. Thus Kamsa and l(r1,1a met. Chapter Forty-three contains
forty verses. Outside the sporting arena of Kamsa, l(r1,1a killed an
elephant named KuvalayapiQa. Then He entered the arena and spoke
with Ca1,1iira. Chapter Forty-four, which contains fifty-one verses, de
scribes how l(r1,1a and Balarama killed the wrestlers named Ca1,1iira and
Mutika and thereafter killed Kamsa and his eight brothers. K:r1,1a,
however, pacified Kamsa's wives and His own father and mother,
Vasudeva and Devaki.
Chapter Forty-five contains fifty verses. This chapter describes how
l(r1,1a pacified His father and mother and celebrated the enthronement
of His grandfather Ugrasena. After promising the inhabitants of
V:rndavana that He would return very soon, l(r1,1a underwent ritualistic
ceremonies as a lcyatriya. He took the vow of brahmacarya and lived in
the guru-kula, where He studied regularly. By killing the demon named
Paftcajana, He received a conchshell named Paftcajanya. l(r1,1a rescued
the son of His guru from the custody of Yamaraja and returned them.
After thus offering guru-da/cyir,rii to repay His teacher, Lord K:r1,1a
returned to Mathura-puri. Chapter Forty-six contains forty-nine verses.
As described in this chapter, K:r1,1a sent Uddhava to V:rndavana to pacify
His father and mother, Nanda Maharaja and Yasoda. Chapter Forty
seven contains sixty-nine verses, describing how Uddhava, following
l(r1,1a's order, went to pacify the gopis and then returned to Mathura.
Thus Uddhava appreciated the ecstatic love felt for l(r1,1a by the inhabi
tants of V:rndavana.
Srimad-Bhagavatam
.Kt1,1a but
When
Jarasandha was about to attack for the eighteenth time, Kalayavana, hav
ing been advised by Narada, also attacked Mathura. Thus the Yadava
dynasty entered a fort in the midst of the water and lived there by mystic
power. After giving full protection to the Yadava dynasty and conferring .
with Lord Baladeva, Lord .Kt1,1a emerged from Dvaraka. Chapter Fifty
one, which contains sixty-three verses, describes how Mucukunda killed
Kalayavana simply by glancing upon him.
Chapter
Fifty-two
contains
forty-four
verses.
In
this
chapter,
Mucukunda offers prayers to .Kt1,1a, and then .Kt1,1a kills all the soldiers
of Kalayavana and
When
wife, Ratidevi.
retrieved the jewel, along with the daughter of Jambavan. .l<r?J;ta later
.l<r?J;ta went to Hastinapura, having heard about the fire in the shellac
Dvaraka. Satadhanva left the Syamantaka jewel with Akrura and fled to
retrieye the jewel. Finally the jewel was discovered and awarded to
After .l<r?J;ta and Arjuna set fire to the KhiiJ;tQava Forest, Arjuna received
at the request of lndra, kills the demon Narakasura, the son of the earth
earth personified offers prayers to .l<r?J;ta and returns to Him all the
ness upon the son of Narakasura and marries the sixteen thousand prin
cesses whom the demon kidnapped. Also in this chapter, .l<r?Qa takes
away the parijata plant from the heavenly planets, and the foolishness of
RukmiJ;ti angry with His joking words. .l<r?Qa pacifies Rukmi1,1i, and
Srimad-Bhagavatam
fifty-three verses, describes how the strength of Lord Siva was defeated
liberates King N:rga, the son of Ikvaku, from a curse and instructs all
kings by explaining the fault in misappropriating the property of a
brahmar;ta. In connection with the deliverance of King N:rga, there are
instructions for the Yadavas, who were puffed up with pride due to
chapter, Lord Baladeva, desiring to see His friends and relatives, went to
Qa went to Kasi and then killed PauQQraka, as well as his friend the
chapter, KtI.J.a exhibited His householder life with His sixteen thousand
wives. Even the great sage Narada was astonished at how KtI.J.a, having
householder life. Thus Narada offered prayers to Lord KtI.J.a, and K:rI.J.a
was very much pleased with him.
KtI.J.a exhibited His daily ritualistic ceremonies and how He released the
news of the Pai).Qavas. Narada informed Kt1.1a that the Pai).Qavas desired
his son, and the release of the kings whom Jarasandha had arrested.
released the kings and restored their royal power, He was worshiped by
Maharaja Yudhithira offered prayers to KtI.J.a and offered Him the first
foremost duty of every man, but this was intolerable to Sisupala, the
King of Cedi. Sisupala began to blaspheme KtI.J.a, who thus severed the
King's head from his body and awarded him the salvation called
Srimad-Bhagavatam
10
the
rajasuya-yajna,
decided to rid the entire world of the Yadavas. To defeat the Yadavas,
Salva worshiped Lord Siva, who rewarded him with an aerial car named
Saubha. When Salva fought with the V:r1,1is, Pradyumna smashed the car
recovers from his injuries and begins fighting with Salva. When J(rI).a
returned to Dvaraka from lndraprastha, He immediately went to the bat
Bhagavatam,
Purar:ws.
Srimad
Chapter
brahmar:ws
and bathed in holy places until He at last came to the Battlefield of Kuru
Sudama Vipra, a friend of J(r1,1a's, approached J(rI).a for money and was
chapter describes the friendly talks between J(rI).a and His friend
11
Sudama. K:rI].a very gladly accepted a gift of flat rice from Sudama
Vipra. When Sudama Vipra returned home, he saw that everything there
was wonderfully opulent, and he praised the friendship of the Supreme
how the Yadavas went to Kuruketra because of a solar eclipse and how
Nanda Maharaja and the residents of V:rndavana, who had also come
how Draupadi asked all K:rI].a's queens about how they had married
form a great sacrifice on this occasion, the sages advised him regarding
worship of K:rI].a, the Supreme Personality of Godhead. After the yajiia
His father and mother, K:rI].a, by His mercy, returned their dead sons,
tee Bahulasva and stay at the house of Srutadeva and advise them about
spiritual advancement.
worshiping Lord ViI].U and then return home, back to Godhead. By wor
ship of demigods, one may get material power, but this chapter describes
how an ordinary living being in the material world can be favored by
Lord Sri K:rI].a, and it establishes Lord ViI].u's supremacy above Lord
disclosing who is the best among the material deities. Although ViJ.].u is
among the three deities-Brahma, ViJ.].u and Mahesvara-He is tran
Srimad-Bhigavatam
12
J
brahmar;w. and how Arjuna was astonished. Chapter Ninety contains fifty
verses. This chapter summarizes KtJ.Ui's lrlas and presents the logic of
madhurer;w. samapayet, establishing that everything ends well in
transcendental bliss.
CHAPTER ONE
Introduction
The summary of the First Chapter is as follows. This chapter describes
how Karhsa, frightened by hearing an omen about his being killed by the
eighth son of Devaki, killed Devaki's sons one after another.
quested him to describe Lord Krf?I,la, who appeared with Baladeva in the
Yadu dynasty, and how K:rf?I,la performed His activities within this world.
the boat by which to achieve the ultimate goal of life. Except for an
Krf?I,la was the only worshipable Deity for the Pa1,1<Javas. When
Maharaja Parik?it was in the womb of his mother, Uttara, Krf?I,la saved
him from the attack of the brahma-sastra. Now Maharaja Parik?it asked
Sukadeva Gosvami how His Lordship Baladeva, the son of Rohi1,1i, could
have appeared in the womb of Devaki. Why did "Krl?I,la transfer Himself
from Mathura to V:rndavana, King Parik?it asked, and how did He live
there with His family members? What did "Krl?I,la do in Mathura and
V:rndavana, and why did He kill His maternal uncle Karhsa? For how
many years did Krf?I,la reside in Dvaraka, and how many queens did He
have? Maharaja Parik?it asked Sukadeva Gosvami all these questions. He
uniyerse. The speaker, the inquirer and the audience all become
purified."
13
14
Srimad-Bhagavatam
[Canto
10,
Ch.
Once when the entire world was overburdened by the increasing mili
tary power of demons in the form of kings, mother earth assumed the
other demigods, took the cow-shaped mother earth to the shore of the
milk ocean, where he offered prayers to please Lord ViI).u, who lay there
surface of the earth to mitigate the burden created by the demons. The
Lord I).a in the family of Yadu to increase the sons and grandsons in
that dynasty. By the will of Lord I).a, Anantadeva would appear first,
Brahrna informed mother earth about all this, and then he returned to
hearing this omen, Karilsa was immediately ready to kill Devaki, but
would not be good for Karilsa to kill his younger sister, especially at the
time of her marriage. Anyone who possesses a material body must die,
Vasudeva advised him. Every living entity lives in a body for some time
into accepting the body as the soul. If a person under this mistaken con
Karilsa could kill them. Why then should Karilsa kill Devaki now? Karilsa
was satisfied by this proposal. In due course of time, when Devaki gave
that since he was to be killed by the eighth child, why should he kill the
first? Although Vasudeva did not trust him, Karilsa requested Vasudeva
to take the child back. Later, however, after Narada approached Karilsa
and disclosed to him that the demigods were appearing in the Yadu and
Text
1]
Kr1.1a:
Introduction
15
V:rI.li dynasties and conspiring to kill him, Karhsa decided to kill all the
children born in these families, and he also decided that any child born
from the womb of Devaki must be killed. Thus he arrested and im
prisoned both Devaki and Vasudeva and killed six of their sons, one after
another. Narada had also informed Karhsa that in his previous birth
Kamsa was Kalanemi, a demon killed by ViJ.lU. Consequently, Karhsa
Mathura-lilii and
Bhagavatam there are ninety chapters, which describe all these lilas.
The first four chapters describe Brahma's prayers for the relief of the
earth's burden, and they also describe the appearance of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead. Chapters Five through Thirty-nine recount
K:r1.1a's pastimes in V:rndiivana. The Fortieth Chapter describes how
K:r1,1a enjoyed' in the water of the Yamuna and how Akn1ra offered
prayers. Chapters Forty-one through Fifty-one, eleven chapters, tell of
K:r1,1a's pastimes in Mathura, and Chapters Fifty-two through Ninety,
thirty-nine chapters, relate K:r1.1a's pastimes in Dvarakii.
Chapters Twenty-nine through Thirty-three describe K:r1,1a's dancing
with the gopis, known as the rasa-lila. Therefore these five chapters are
TEXT
TfelR
'"'
"'
fctlil
e14((4:q t: I
00 :qr;:ri:l111
1111
"
sri-rajovdca
kathito vamsa-vistaro
bhavata soma-suryayolt
rajnam cobhaya-vamsyanam
caritam paramadbhutam
16
Srimad-Bhigavatam
the dynasties of both the moon-god and the sun-god, with the ex
alted and wonderful character of their kings.
PURPORT
about _Krf[!Qa and give further details, he thanked Sukadeva Gosvami for
said:
Vedic principles He married many wives who were the best of women,
Text
I]
!ia:
Introduction
17
(Bhiig. 9.24.66)
The Yadu dynasty belonged to the family descending from Soma, the
moon-god. Although the planetary systems are so arranged that the sun
comes first, before the moon, Parikit Maharaja gave more respect to the
dynasty of the moon-god, the
soma-vamsa,
dynasty, descending from the moon, .i(rI}.a had appeared. There are two
different
atriya
king of the moon planet and the other descending from the king of the
sun. Whenever the Supreme Personality of Godhead appears, He
generally appears in a
atriya
yadu-vamsa,
Twenty-fourth Chapter, of
the kings of the
silrya-vamsa
bhutam).
scribed in
Bhagavad-gita (8.20),
Bhagavad-gita as
Bhiigavatam,
Srimad
Srimad-Bhigavatam
18
'lif4ftw afte"Et+t
s_,:;. '"-"fflut f4qiltfltttfUI wt:
1
II II
yados ca dharma-silasya
nitararil muni-sattama
tatrarnsendvatir{WSya
vr:wr viryai sarilsa na/:t
TRANSLATION
Yadu, who were very pious and strictly adherent to religious prin
The Brahrna-samhita
(5.1)
vu-tattva.
iSvaral:t pararnal:t krl:t
sac-cid-ananda-vigraha/:t
anddir ddir govindal:t
sarva-kdra-kdram
Text 3]
19
yasyaika-niSvasita-kiilam athavalambya
jivanti loma-vilaja jagad-ar:uJa,-natha/:t
vi'{tur mahan sa iha yasya kala-viSe$0
govindam adi-puTU$arh tam aham bhajami
"The Brahmas, the heads of the innumerable universes, live only for the
duration of one breath of Maha-ViJ.)U. I worship Govinda, the original
5.48)
His glorious activities. Another meaning may be derived from this verse
describe J(rl.)a only partially (amsena), for no one can describe J(rl.)a
TEXT3
15s.S :
Srimad-Bhagavatam
20
krtavan-executed;
say; vistanit-elaborately.
TRANSLATION
The Supersoul, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Sri '.Ia,
TEXT4
At*l6%qfi4+11;{If!
"'
"'
"
llq;(Tspm
Text 4]
21
"'
gans'lf
f46 f4;n quna
It \1 It
nivrtta-tar$air upagiyamiinad
bhavaU$adhac chrotra-mano- 'bhiramat
ka uttamaloka-gur;uinuvadat
pumiin virajyeta vina pa5ughnat
nivrtta-released from; tar$ai-lust or material activities; upagiya
miinat-which is described or sung; bhava-aU$adhat-which is the
right medicine for the material disease; srotra-the process of aural
reception;
order to gain relief from the disease of repeated birth and death. Al
though India is now fallen, when there is a message that someone will
speak about Bhagavad-gita or Srimad-Bhiigavatam, thousands of people
still gather to hear. This verse indicates, however, that such recitation of
Srimad-Bhigavatam
22
[Canto
(nivrtta-tar$aiM.
10,
Ch.
Everyone
within this material world, beginning from Brahma down to the insig
nificant ant, is full of material desires for sense enjoyment, and everyone
is busy in sense gratification, but when thus engaged one cannot fully
understand the value of kr$r:ta-katha, either in the form of Bhagavad
gita or
in
Srimad-Bhagavatam.
liberated persons, this hearing will certainly free us from the bondage of
Bhagavad-gita it
Bhagavad
gita from unscrupulous persons who depart from the simple presentation
of Bhagavad-gita and distort it for their personal satisfaction, they fail to
derive the real benefit. There are big scholars, politicians, philosophers
Bhagavad-gitd
and people in general hear from them, being uninterested in hearing the
Bhagavatam
therefore advised us to hear the glories of the Lord from a realized per
son
approach him to hear about the Lord, for this is strictly forbidden by
Srila Sanatana Gosvami, who quotes from the
Padma Purdr;ta:
avai$r;tava-mukhodgirr;tam
patam hari-kathdmrtam
sravar;tam naiva kartavyam
sarpocchtam yatha payab,
One should avoid hearing from a person not situated in Vai:Q.ava
behavior. A Vai:Q.ava is
nivrtta-tr$r;ta;
Text
4]
!ia:
23
Introduction
scholars,
philosophers
Bhagavad-gita
and
politicians
exploit
the
importance
of
son who is
for
his kingdom and family prior to meeting death, epitomizes the person fit
Srimad-Bhagavatam
(bhavaU$adhi)
that people in general in all parts of the world may take advantage of this
movement and thus be relieved of the threefold miseries of material
existence.
The instructions of
Bhagavatam
Bhagavad-gita
Srimad
the Lord from these books and thus benefit on the path of liberation. Two
classes of men, however, will never be interested in hearing the message
of
to commit suicide and those determined to kill cows and other animals
, for the satisfaction of their own tongues. Although such persons may
make a show of hearing
Srimad-Bhagavatam at a Bhagavata-saptaha,
this is but another creation of the karmis, who cannot derive any benefit
from such a performance. The word pa5u-ghnat is important in this con
nection. Pa5u-ghna means "butcher." Persons fond of performing
ritualistic ceremonies for elevation to the higher planetary systems must
offer sacrifices
(yajiias)
animal
sacrifices,
ceremomes.
which
Vedas
are
recommended
in
Vedic
ritualistic
Srimad-Bhagavatam
24
[Canto
I 0,
Ch.
who kill animals for such ceremonies are considered butchers. Butchers
terially allured. Their only interest lies in developing comforts for the
temporary body.
bhogaiSvarya-prasaktiiniim
tayiipahrtfJ--cetasiim
vyavasiiyiitmikii buddhi/:t
samiidhau na vidhiyate
"In the minds of those who are too attached to sense enjoyment and ma
terial opulence, and who are bewildered by such things, the resolute
2.44)
manya-janama paiyii,
for the sake of achieving a material position with which to gain better
willingly keeping themselves in the cycle of birth and death. They cannot
be interested in .Kr!?a consciousness.
tually see how this attitude automatically develops in persons who are
.Kr!?a conscious. Although the devotees of the .Kr!?a consciousness
Text
4]
KrJ].a:
Introduction
25
bhava,ti}. The Lord sits within everyone's heart, and by the grace of the
Lord the devotee receives instructions directly from the Lord Himself,
who says in Bhagavad-gitii
(15.15):
tual master and his disciple, others also sometimes take advantage of
hearing these topics and also benefit. These topics are the medicine to
stop the repetition of birth and death. The cycle of repeated birth and
death, by which one takes on different bodies again and again, is called
Srimad-Bhagavatam
26
[Canto
10,
Ch.
said, "I am fully satisfied. I do not ask for any benediction for material
sense gratification." We actually see that even young boys and girls in
the J(rI)a consciousness movement have given up their long practice of
bad habits like illicit sex, meat-eating, intoxication and gambling. Be
cause J(rI)a consciousness is so potent that it gives them full satisfaction,
they are no longer interested in material sense gratification.
TEXTS 5-7
rqnt q (1s(ai4f461ttlfellllfl4:
.
r:J:u:::nn
i" t: It
if
q
4httffll
itiqlo;gi:flwtl'(
3fl"qtfiT
mw.n: II II
61Ri4
<-
-!f:q
....06061
..
""
'1filq:
U614l6 =il
+i
'""'..,;itlftffl::
It
IUiij"i!
.-dlwt'ii
'-\
....... dkii1...
II \9 II
Text
7]
27
viryai tasyakhila-deha-bhdjam
antar bahi pur1J.$a-kdla-rapai
prayacchato mrtyum utamrtam ca
mdyd-man1J.$yasya vadasva vidvan
pitamaha-my grandfathers, the five Pa1;1qavas (Yudhihira,
Bhima, Arjuna, Nakula and Sahadeva); me-my; samare-on the Bat
tlefield of Kuruketra; amaram-jayai-with fighters who could gain
victory over the demigods on the battlefield; devavrata-adya
Bhimadeva and others; atirathai-great commanders in chief;
timi1igilai-resembling great timiligila fish, which can easily eat large
sharks; duratyayam-very difficult to cross; kaurava-sainya-saga
ram-the ocean of the assembled soldiers of the Kauravas; krtvd-con
sidering such an ocean; ataran-crossed it; vatsa-padam-exactly as
one steps over a small hoofprint of a calf; sma-in the past; yat
plava-the shelter of the boat of Qa's lotus feet; draui-of
ASvatthama; astra-by the brahmdstra; viplU$tam-being attacked and
burned; idam-this; mat-angam-my body; santdna-bijam-the only
seed left, the last descendant of the family; kuru-pa1J4a,vandm-of the
Kurus and the Pa1;1qavas (because no one but me lived after the Battle of
Kuruketra); jugopa-gave protection; kuim-within the womb;
gata-being placed; dtta-cakra-taking in hand the disc; mdtu-of
my mother; ca-also; me-my; ya-the Lord who; saram-the
shelter; gatdyd-who had taken; viryai-the glorification of the tran
scendental characteristics; tasya-of Him (the Supreme Personality of
Godhead); akhila-deha-bhajdm-of all the materially embodied living
entities; anta bahi-inside and outside; pur1J.$a-of the Supreme
Person; kdla-rupai-in the forms of eternal time; prayacchata-who
is the giver; mrtyum-of death; uta-it is so said; amrtam ca-and
eternal life; mdya-man1J.$yasya-of the Lord, who appeared as an ordi
nary human being by His own potency; vadasva-kindly describe;
vidvan-0 learned speaker (Sukadeva Gosvami).
TRANSLATION
Taking the boat of i!fa's lotus feet, my grandfather Arjuna
and others crossed the ocean of the Battlefield of Kuruki!fetra, in
which such commanders
as
28
Srimad-Bhagavatam
body, the body of the last remaining descendant of the Kurus and
(10.14.58):
samasrita ye pada-pallava-plavam
mahat-padam pur:tya-yao murarel;,
bhavambudhir vatsa-padam param padam
padam padam yad vipadam na team
"For one who has accepted the boat of the lotus feet of the Lord, who is
the shelter of the cosmic manifestation and is famous as Murari, or the
enemy of the Mura demon, the ocean of the material world is like the
VaikuQtha, the place where there are no material miseries, not the place
(18.66),
you from all sinful reactions. Do not fear." By taking shelter of Lord
Qa, one comes under the safest protection. Thus when the PaQavas
took shelter at the lotus feet of Qa, all of them were on the safe side of
the Battlefield of Kuruketra. Parikit Maharaja, therefore, felt obliged
to think of :Kr1.1a in the last days of his life. This is the ideal result of
Qa consciousness: ante narayar:ta-smrtil;,. If at the time of death one
Text
8]
.KrJ].a:
29
Introduction
and worshipable Deity of the Pa1,1<;lava family. Moreover, apart from Lord
1,1a's personal contact with the Pa1,1<;lavas, I,la is the Supersoul of all
living entities, and He gives everyone liberation, even if one is not a pure
devotee. Kamsa, for example, was not at all a devotee, yet 1,1a, after
killing him, gave him salvation. I,la consciousness is beneficial to
everyone, whether one is a pure devotee or a nondevotee. This is the
glory of 1,1a consciousness. Considering this, who will not take shelter
at the lotus feet of 1,1a. 1,1a is described in this verse as
maya
show favor to the fallen conditioned souls. 1,1a is always situated in His
original position as
Q.
'"'
: Awnllll
rohir:tyiis tanaya prokto
rama sarikar$a1JaS tvaya
devakya garbha-sambandha
kuto dehantaram vind
rohir:tya-of Rohi1,1idevi, the mother of Baladeva; tanaya-the son;
prokta-is well known; rdma-Balarama; smikar$a7Ja-Balarama is
none other than Sankara1,1a, the first Deity in the quadruple group
(Saitkaral,la,
Aniruddha,
Srimad-Bhagavatam
30
from one body to another, how is it possible that He was first in the
womb of Devaki and then in the womb of Rohi11i? Kindly explain
this to me.
PURPORT
a:na_.....
fq'fli! : I
'f)crnr:'J56i!41-:tmrn: II<; II
kas man mukundo bhagavan
pitur gehad vrajam gata/:l
kva vasam jnatibhil) sardham
krtavan satvatam pati/:l
kasmat-why; mukunda/:l-K:rr,a, who can award liberation to
everyone; bhagavan....,.the Supreme Personality of Godhead; pitu/:l-of
His father (Vasudeva); gehat-from the house; vrajam-to Vraja
dhama, Vrajabhumi; gatai)-went; kva-where; vdsam-placed Him
self to live; jnatibhi/:l-His relatives; sardham-with; krtavan-did so;
Text 10]
31
Gokula, on the other side of the Yamuna, and after some days He moved
Maharaja Parikit was very much eager to hear about K.r1.1a's activities
describe l<.r1.1a's V:rndavana affairs, and the next fifty describe K.r1.1a's
TEXT 10
le6+iJlil;: m: ,
lmR +i(Q(4(iji II oil
vraje vasan kim akaron
madhupuryam ca kesava/:t
kamsam-Kamsa;
addha-directly;
a-tat
TRANSLATION
Lord Kt11a lived both in V:rndiivana and in Mathurii. What did
He do there? Why did He kill Kamsa, His mother's brother? Such
killing is not at all sanctioned in the siistras.
32
Srimad-Bhagavatam
PURPORT
One's maternal uncle, the brother of one's mother, is on the lvel of
one's father. When a maternal uncle has no son, his nephew legally in
herits his property. Therefore, why did r;ta directly kill Kamsa, the
brother of His mother? Maharaja Parikit was very much inquisitive
about the facts in this regard.
TEXT 11
441441 . : I
.Q(I41iht.: :llll
deham mtin!J,am asritya
kati variiTJ.i vrTJ.ibhi
yadu-puryiim sahiiviitsit
patnya katy abhavan prabho
deham-body; miinuam-exactly like a man; asritya-accepting;
kati variiTJ.i-how many years; vrTJ.ibhi-in the company of the
V:rr;tis, those who were born in the V:rr;ti family; yadu-puryiim-in
Dvaraka, in the residential quarters of the Yadus; saha-with; aviitsit
the Lord lived; patnya-wives; kati-how many; abhavan-were
there; prabho-of the Lord.
TRANSLATION
Kr,J}.a, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, has no material
body, yet He appears as a human being. For how many years did
Text 13]
33
that K{t;.a is never nirakara, or formless. He has His form, exactly like
that of a human being. There is no doubt about this.
6((ritiij
:aa t,r#9.
etad anyac ca sarvam me
mune kmw-vice$#tam
vaktum arhasi sarvajfia
sraddadhanaya vistrtam
etat-all these details; anyat ca -and others also; sarvam-every
thing; me-unto me; mune-0 great sage; km:w-vice$#tam-the ac
tivities of Lord K{t;.a; vaktum-to describe; arhasi -you are able;
am not envious but have all faith in Him; vistrtam-in full detail.
TRANSLATION
:m 4ihlt:+rq 1
W'fRt4144i'liiiYA 1111
nai$atidu}:lsaha k$un mam
tyaktodam api badhate
pibantam tvan-mukhambhoja
cyutam hari-kathamrtam
na-not; e$d-all this; ati-du}:lsaha
--
k$ut-hunger; mam....,.u
. nto me; tyakta-udam-even after giving up
Srimad-Bhagavatam
34
[Canto 10,
eli. 1
am
about 1\.f'l!a, which is flowing from the lotus mouth of Your Lord
PURPORT
food and drink. As a human being, he was certainly both hungry and
thirsty, and therefore Sukadeva Gosvami might have wanted to stop nar
rating the transcendental topics of I<{Qa; but despite his fast, Maharaja
Parikit was not at all fatigued. "The hunger and thirst from my fast do
not disturb me," he said. "Once when I felt very thirsty, I went to the
asrama of Samika Muni to drink water, but the muni did not supply it. I
therefore wrapped a dead snake over his shoulder, and that is why I was
the material platform there are disturbances from hunger and thirst, on
the spiritual platform there is no such thing as fatigue.
being is Brahman, or spirit soul, and needs spiritual food to satisfy his
The word amrta is also an important reference to the moon, and the
Text
14]
1,1a:
Introduction
35
7.5.30)
At the present
cepting another form and dying again. To stop this repetition of birth
But unless one hears krr;w.-kathii from a realized soul like Sukadeva
Gosvami, one cannot relish the nectar of krr;w.-kathii, which puts an end
to all material fatigue, and enjoy the blissful life of transcendental exis
that those who have tasted the nectar of krr;w.-kathii lose all material
While the devotees enjoy spiritual bliss, the nondevotees are surprised
that the devotees have forgotten material hankerings..
TEXT
14
rr
f;tIR4 IG\
sata uviica
evam niSamya bhrgu-nandana sadhu-viidam
vaiyiisaki/:1. sa bhagaviin atha V1Ju-riitam
pratyarcya krr;w.-caritam kali-kalma-ghnaril
vyiihartum iirabhata bhiigavata-pradhiina/:1.
Srimad-Bhagavatam
36
Vyasadeva;
sal;,-he;
atha-thus;
Vi1,1u;
TRANSLATION
Siita Gosvami said: 0 son of Bhgu [Saunaka J.l!lli], after
Sukadeva Gosvami, the most respectable devotee, the son of
Vyisadeva, heard the pious questions of Maharaja Parik!llit, he
thanked the King with great respect. Then he began to discourse
on topics concerning !ila, which are the remedy for all suffer
ings in this age of Kali.
PURPORT
In this verse the words kr{ta-caritam kali-kala-ghnam indicate
that the activities of Lord K:r1,1a are certainly the greatest panacea for all
bogus svamis and yogis who do not refer to kr{ta-katha. Therefore most
people are unfortunate and disturbed by many calamities.
Srila
gitd is being accepted in all spheres of life, especially in advanced, educated circles.
.
Srila Sukadeva Gosvami is described in this verse as bhagavata
Text
15]
a:
Introduction
37
words bear the same meaning; that is, Maharaja Parik.it was a great
devotee of K:ra, and Sukadeva Gosvami was also a great saintly person
and a great devotee of K:ra. Combined together to present krr;ta-kathii,
they give great relief to suffering humanity.
anarthopa5amarh saad
bhakti-yogam adhoaje
lokasyajanato vidvarilS
cakre satvata-samhitam
"The material miseries of the living entity, which are superfluous to
him, can be directly mitigated by the linking process of devotional ser
vice. But the mass of people do not know this, and therefore the learned
Vyasadeva compiled this Vedic literature, Srimad-Bhiigavatam, which is
in relation to the Supreme Truth." (Bhag. 1.7.6) People in general are
unaware that the message of Srimad-Bhiigavatam can give all of human
society relief from the pangs of Kali-yuga (kali-kala-ghnam).
TEXT
15
Q+=qn;qqfHn
f.{4 (I'SIMQ I
4 ij ' :
sri-suka uvaca
samyag vyavasita buddhis
tava rajari-sattama
vasudeva-kathiiyam te
yaj jata na!hiki rati
sri-suka uvaca-Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said; samyak-completely;
vyavasita-fixed; buddhi-intelligence; tava-of Your Majesty; raja
ri-sattama-0 best of rajaris, saintly kings; vasudeva-kathayam-in
hearing about the topics of Vasudeva, K:ra; te-your; yat-because;
jata-developed; na!hiki-without cessation; rati-attraction or
ecstatic devotional service.
38
Srimad-Bhigavatam
TRANSLATION
Srila Sukadeva Gosvimi said: 0 Your Majesty, best of all saintly
standing, which is the only true goal for humanity. Because that
the pangs of materialistic life? One who has fixed his mind in I,la on
best of all saintly kings, and Sukadeva Gosvami was muni-sattama, the
the 1,1a consciousness movement should spread all over the world to
bring both the speaker and the audience to the transcendental platform
and back home, hack to Godhead.
TEXT 16
Iff: 'fi( I
140ft II
vasudeva-katha-pra.Snall
puTU$drhs trin pundti hi
vaktaram pracchakam srotfrhs
tat-pada-salilam yatha
Text 17]
39
srotrn
tat-pada
The Ganges, emanating from the toe of Lord Vi!lll_lU, purifies the
three worlds, the upper, middle and lower planetary systems.
Similarly, when one asks questions about the pastimes and charac
teristics of Lord Vasudeva, .Kr'lll.la, three varieties of men are
purified: the speaker or preacher, he who inquires, and the people
in general who listen.
PURPORT
It is said, tasmiid gurum prapadyeta jijnasu sreya uttamam
(Bhiig. 11.3.21). Those interested in understanding transcendental sub
ject matters as the goal of life must approach the bona fide' spiritual
master.
guru,
who can give right information about Kt?J:.la. Herein, Maharaja Parik?it
has surrendered to the right personality, Sukadeva Gosvami, for en
lightenment in
vasudeva-katha.
Bhagavad-gita
Srimad-Bhiigavatam is a
ment is full of
vasudeva-katha,
l8i40lllill41616:
ma:za::::sT ;mTlJi
bhumir drpta-nrpa-vyaja
daityanika-satayutai
11\911
Srimad-Bhagavatam
40
[Canto I 0, Ch. I
akranta bhuri-bharer:w
brahmar:wm sarar;tam yayau
bhum*-mother erth; drpta
TRANSLATION
Once when mother earth was overburdened by hundreds of
(4. 7):
tary power, their business is to fight and increase the military strength of
Text
18]
:Kr'l11.1a:
Introduction
41
4.13).
TEXT
18
ftcRu..fflufit: I
aq(11 Qil+t(J II II
gaur bhatvasru-mukhi khinna
krandanti karu1J-am vibho/:t
upasthitantike tasmai
vyasanam samavocata
Srimad-Bhagavatam
42
TRANSLATION
Mother earth assumed the form of a cow. Very much distressed,
with tears in her eyes, she appeared before Lord Brahmii and told
TEXT 19
i1liT
%1 I
II
n.
_!)
III ..
ajl(qtt(fit: IIII
brahmii tad-upadhiiryiitha
saha devais tayii saha
jagiima sa-tri-nayanas
tirarh ira-payo-nidheb,
brahmii-Lord Brahmii; tat - upad hiirya -understanding everything
rightly; atka-thereafter; saha-with; devaib,-the demigods; tayii
Brahmii, with mother earth, Lord Siva and all the other demigods,
the various affairs of this universe, and Lord Siva, who is responsible for
annihilation. Both maintenance and annihilation go on perpetually,
Bhagavad-gitii.
(4.8),
Those who are obedient to the laws of God are protected by different ser
vants and demigods, whereas those who are undesirable are vanquished
by Lord
Siva.
Text 20]
43
Siva. Then, along with mother earth, they went to the shore of the ocean
of milk, where Lord Vi1,1u lies on a white island, Svetadvipa.
TEXT 20
fi
T41Efifq( I
"'-.ffi"' Q+nmw: ttoll
tatra gatvd jaganndtham
deva-devam vrakapim
puram pura-saktena
upatasthe samahitab,
as
the Purua-sukta.
PURPORT
The demigods, such as Lord Brahma, Lord
Aside from the demigods, even in human society there are many influen
tial personalities supervising various businesses or establishments.
Lord Vi1,1u, however, is the God of gods
(paramesvara). He is
Srimad-Bhiigavatam
44
(10.12)
in
deva-deva.
TEXT 21
fiR -
.t+,.,:
ujij 1
m & it Pl?!61((1: FN161+41( +4T II II
giram samadhau gagane samiritam
niSamya vedhas tridaSan uvaca ha
gam paurU$iril me sr1Jutamaratt punar
vidhiyatam asu tathaiva ma ciram
giram-a vibration of words; samadhau-in trance; gagane-in the
sky; samiritam-vibrated; niSamya-hearing; vedhatt-Lord Brahmii;
tridaSan-unto the demigods; uvdca-said; ha -oh; gam -the order;
Text 21]
45
srouta
asu-immediately;
TRANSLATION
While in trance, Lord Brahmii heard the words of Lord ViQU
vibrating in the sky. Thus he told the demigods: 0 demigods, hear
from me the order of irodaka8iiyi ViQU, the Supreme Person,
and execute it attentively without delay.
PURPORT
It appears that the words of the Supreme Personality of Godhead can
be heard in trance by competent persons. Modern science gives us
telephones, by which one can hear sound vibrations from a distant place.
Similarly, although other persons cannot hear the words of Lord Vi1,1u,
Lord Brahmii is able to hear the Lord's words within himself. This is con
(hrda).
The same
mfu)haM.
mfu)ha (avajananti
Srimad-Bhigavatam
46
TEXT 22
'i
'lffl
q
Q'
'i4(1\ii!U
ff:(tirtq':trit11i(
tllctjWti ri'Jq(:
II
m:a::;:uamn
its burden by His own potency. in the form of time, all of you
demigods should appear through plenary portions as sons and
grandsons in the family of the Yadus.
PURPORT
As stated in the Brahma-samhita
(5.39):
Text
23]
I].a:
Introduction
47
already aware of how the whole world was suffering because of the in
crease of demons. Without reference to the supreme power of the Per
sonality of Godhead, demons assert themselves to be independent kings
and presidents, and thus they create a disturbance by increasing their
military power. When such disturbances are very prominent, K:ra ap
pears. At present also, various demoniac states all over the world are in
creasing their military power in many ways, and the whole situation has
become distressful. Therefore K:ra has appeared by His name, in the
Hare K:ra movement, which will certainly diminish the burden of the
world. Philosophers, religionists, and people in general must take to this
movement very seriously, for man-made plans and devices will not help
bring peace on earth. The transcendental sound Hare K:ra is not dif
ferent from the person K:ra.
23
fol. '{: t: 1
48
Srimad-Bhagavatam
vasudeva-grhe saiid
bhagaviin purUa}J, parab,
jan4yate tat-priyartham
sambhavantu sura-striya}J,
vasudeva-grhe-in the house of Vasudeva (who would be the father of
KtI).a when the Lord appeared); siiiit-personally; bhagaviin-the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, who has full potency; purUa}J,-the
original person; parab,-who is transcendental; jan4yate-will appear;
tat-priya-artham-and for His satisfaction; sambhavantu-should take
birth; sura-striyab,-all the wives of the demigods.
TRANSLATION
The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Sri !llr;ta, who has full
all the wives of the demigods should also appear in order to satisfy
Him.
PURPORT
Text
24]
!1I}.a:
Introduction
49
striyab,. Sura-stri,
sambhavantu sura
sura-stri,
sura-stri were
to appear in dif
ferent ways in different families to give pleasure to the Lord, just so that
they would be fully trained before going to the eternal Goloka
Vrndavana. With the association of Lord :l<rt?Q.a, either at Dvaraka-puri,
Mathura-puri or Vrndavana, they would certainly return home, back to
Godhead. Among the
TEXT
24
KnQ.a;
priya-cikJrya-with the
as
Srimad-Bhagavatam
50
Sri
Sri
times younger. When Kt,Qa appears, all His plenary expansions and
other incarnations appear with Him. This is elaborately explained in
Caitanya-caritamrta. This time, Baladeva would appear before Kt,Qa as
Text
25]
.Kra:
Introduction
51
PURPORT
both a heater and a cooler. In the material world, this potency, working
mahiimayii, acts upon the conditioned souls to deprive them more and
yayii sammohito jiva iitmiinam tri
gu'{liitmakam. In the material world the conditioned soul thinks of him
self as a product of tri-gur;r,a, the three modes of material nature. This is
the bodily conception of life. Because of associating with the three gur;r,as
as
of the material potency, everyone identifies himself with his body. Some
one is thinking he is a
increasingly helps him become purified and devote his energy to the
service of the Lord.
In either case, whether the soul is conditioned or liberated, the Lord is
supreme. As stated in
prakrte/:t kriyamii1Jiini
gur;r,ai/:t karmiiTJi sarvaa/:t
aharikara-vimW;lhiitmii
kartiiham iti manyate
Srimad-Bhagavatam
52
[Canto
10,
Ch.
"The bewildered spirit soul, under the influence of the three modes of
3.27)
one has freedom, but because one is bewildered, being subject to the rule
of mahamaya, one foolishly thinks himself independent (aharikiira
vimii4hatma kartaham iti manyate). But when the conditioned soul be
and unmukha. When the Lord appeared, His potency came with Him and
acted in different ways. She acted as yogamaya with Yasoda, Devaki and
other intimate relations of the Lord, and she acted in a different way with
Kamsa, Salva and other asuras. By the order of Lord K{Qa, His potency
firmed in Bhagavad-gita
(9.13),
prakrtim asrita(l. The mahatmas, who fully surrender to the lotus feet of
the Lord, are directed by yogamaya, whereas the duratmas, those who
fi JlfR
s-.ncr?lx.nall:llna:s
i: 1
311
: '" qt II II
sri-suka uvaca
ity adiSyamara-gar;tan
prajapati-patir vibhu(l
asvasya ca mahiril girbhi(l
sva-dhama paramaril yayau
sri-suka(l uvaca-Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said; iti-thus; adiSya
Text
28]
53
and pacifying mother earth, the very powerful Lord Brahmii, who
;i)
27
qf6491(1'41'4(1'1_ I
'ft'IYI5ia_znA:sZ ftlq(
\911
silraseno yadupatir
mathuram avasan purim
mathurafi chilrasenams ca
vayan bubhuje pura
silrasenab,-King
Surasena;
live; purim-in that city; mathuran-at the place known as the Mathura
district;
silrasenan ca-and
vayan
TRANSLATION
Formerly, Surasena, the chief of the Yadu dynasty, had gone to
28
ffiJ: (14ta: I
df.teil : II
Srimad-Bhagavatam
54
sonality of Godhead;
TRANSLATION
Since that time, the city of Mathuri had been the capital of all
the kings of the Yadu dynasty. The city and district of Mathuri are
very intimately connected with :Kf'J}.a, for Lord :Kf'J}.a lives there
eternally.
PURPORT
It is understood that Mathura City is the transcendental abode of Lord
(vrndavanam parityajya
padam ekam na gacchati). At present, the place known as Vtndavana, in
the district of Mathura, continues its position as a transcendental place,
and certainly anyone who goes there becomes transcendentally purified.
sri gaw:)a-maTJ4ala-bhami,
yeba jane cintamarJi,
ta 'ra haya vrajabhame vasa
"Vrajabhumi" refers to Mathura-VJ;ndavana, and Gau<}.a-mal,l<}.ala
Text
29]
.Krtn:..,a:
55
Introduction
Lord. There are many devotees who vow never to leave V:rndavana and
Mathura. This is undoubtedly a good vow, but if one leaves V:rndavana,
places certainly goes back home, back to Godhead, after giving up his
body. Thus the words
TEXT
29
m 61Rt: ,11a( : 1
wttOT 1111
tasyam tu karhicic chaurir
vasudevatt krtodvahatt
devakya suryaya sardham
prayar:te ratham aruhat
tasyam--in
appeared
as Vasudeva;
krta-udvahatt-after
karhicit
vasudevatt
being
married;
aruhat
Srimad-Bhagavatam
56
TRANSLATION
Some time ago, Vasudeva, who belonged to the demigod family
mounted his chariot to return home with his newly married wife.
TEXT 30
nlortwr : : : f!lttfitttl 1
Jm: ij'6t?t: II oil
ugrasena-suta kamsa
svasu priya-cikir$aya
ra5min hayanam jagraha
raukmai ratha-satair vrta
ugrasena-suta-the son of Ugrasena; kamsa-by the name Karhsa;
svasu-of his own sister Devaki; priya-cikir$aya-to please her on the
occasion of her marriage; ramin-the reins; hayanam-of the horses;
jagraha
took; raukmai
chariots; vrta-surrounded.
TRANSLATION
Kamsa, the son of King Ugrasena, in order to please his sister
TEXTS 31-32
''f+tl"tl'( I
3llfll"tl+twf m oo;ri 'f!d'( II II
i(l41ortf ijf+tl(lulf i. ('t'f{'S,tt I
: :
:
catu-satam paribarham
gajanam hema-malinam
Text 32]
57
hundred;
paribarham-dowry;
gajanam-of
horses;
ayutam-ten
thousand;
sardham-along
with;
decorated
with
ornaments;
duhitre-unto
his
Srimad-Bhagavatam
58
give
his
TEXT 33
-([
asJ;unlla:Li 616'
a:
" I
il: II
..
sarikha-turya-mrdarigas ca
nedur dundubhaya/:1, samam
prayaTJ-a-prakrame tata
vara-vadhvo/:1, sumarigalam
sarikha-conchshells; tllrya-bugles; mrdariga/:1,-drums; ca-also;
nedu/:1,-vibrated;
dundubhaya/:1,-kettledrums;
samam-in concert;
TRANSLATION
0 beloved son, Maharaja Parik11it, when the bride and bride
TEXT 34
SBifi:uj mll11QII6:11U(etl
nn a::; PWR
Text 35]
59
...._
: : qm fql('l.-.: I
m\.qdQ(:s 11'-\11
Srimad-Bhagavatam
60
papa/.1--sinful;
the
bhojanam-of
Bhoja
dynasty;
kula
took up.
TRANSLATION
Kamsa was a condemned personality in the Bhoja dynasty he
hand and took up his sword with his right hand to sever her head
PURPORT
Kamsa was driving the chariot and controlling the reins with his left
hand, but as soon as he heard the omen that his sister's eighth child
would kill him, he gave up the rins, caught hold of his sister's hair, and
with his right hand took up a sword to kill her. Before, he had been so
affectionate that he was acting as his sister's chariot driver, but as soon as
he heard that his self-interest or his life was at risk, he forgot all affec
tion for her and immediately became a great enemy. This is the nature of
demons. No one should trust a demon, despite any amount of affection.
Aside from this, a king, a politician or a woman cannot be trusted, since
they can do anything abominable for their personal interest. CiiQakya
PaQQita therefore says, vi.Svaso naiva kartavya/.1- stru raja-kule$U ca.
TEXT 36
NFI
"''
qf(('{l'*41.t'i II
Text 37]
61
tam jugupsita-karmar:tam
nrsamsam nirapatrapam
vasudevo maha-bhaga
uvaca parisantvayan
Kamsa was ready to kill Vasudeva's wife, Vasudeva remained sober and
unagitated. In a peaceful attitude, Vasudeva began to address Kamsa by
putting forward reasonable arguments. Vasudeva was a great personality
because he knew how to pacify a cruel person and how to forgive even
the bitterest enemy. One who is fortunate is never caught, even by tigers
or snakes.
TEXT 37
wT<iff 3'q1'fl
'"'
IEI"Iqgo1: l4rr.:l:::n'lq
:t :
ij' qQ(I(q4fill
(\
sri-vasudeva uvaca
slaghaniya-gur:ta surair
bhavan bhoja-yaaskara
sa katham bhaginim hanyat
striyam udvaha-parvar:ti
ll\91l
Srimad-Bhagavatam
62
of your family, the Bhoja dynasty, and great heroes praise your
qualities. How could such a qualified person
as
J
31'-1 tfR 511fUiwtf:
11
nd am:sZ
Text 39]
63
vai-indeed;
praJJ-indm-for
every
living
entity;
dhruva-is assured.
TRANSLATION
0 great hero, one who takes birth is sure to die, for death is
born with the body. One may die today or after hundreds of years,
but death is sure for every living entity.
PURPORT
Vasudeva wanted to impress upon Kamsa that although Kamsa feared
dying and therefore wanted to kill even a woman, he could not avoid
death. Death is sure. Why then should Kamsa do something that would
be detrimental to his reputation and that of his family? As confirmed in
Bhagavad-gita
(2.27):
q'9i)(q t;(tnStt :
a:tiW{I('4Sflq :
dehe paficatvam apanne
dehi karmanugo 'vaa
II
Srimad-Bhigavatam
64
dehantaram anuprapya
praktanam tyajate vapu/.t
TRANSLATION
When the present body turns to dust and is again reduced to five
spiritual understanding.
"As the embodied soul continually passes, in this body, from boyhood to
youth to old age, the soul similarly passes into another body at death. The
self-realized soul is not bewildered by such a change." (Bg.
2.13)
A per
son or an animal is not the material body; rather, the material body is the
and elaborately explains how one changes dresses one after another. The
same Vedic knowledge is confirmed here. The living being, the soul, is
constantly changing bodies one after another. Even in the present life,
and from youth to old age; similarly, when the body is too old to con
tinue, the living being gives up this body and, by the laws of nature,
Text
40)
Kra:
65
Introduction
(Bg. 13.22).
life. Why are there higher and lower bodies? One receives these bodies
according to the contaminations of material nature. If in this life one is
contaminated by the mode of ignorance and sinful activities (dkrti), in
the next life, by the laws of nature, one will certainly get a body full of
suffering. The laws of nature are not subservient to the whimsical
desires of the conditioned soul. Our endeavor, therefore, should be to
associate always with sattva-gur:w and not indulge in rajo-gur:w or tamo
40
t+4Rt I
<l'st1i64 .ftl mnll\loll
vrajarits ti$than padaikena
yathaivaikena gacchati
yatha trr:w-jalaukaivarit
dehi karma-gatirit gata/:t
vrajan-a person, while traveling on the road; ti.$than-while stand
ing; pada ekena-on one foot; yatha -as; eva -indeed;
e kena -by
66
Srimad-Bhiigavatam
TRANSLATION
Text 41]
67
TEXT 41
... -.-..:
'IWfl(uIllPwt:
'1Wf(11
ffil_ wtqw;RI: 11\l II
tNT
idrsam-similarly;
abhinivita-is fully
absorbed;
cetana-he
whose consciousness;
TRANSLATION
Having experienced a situation by seeing or hearing about it,
one contemplates and speculates about that situation, and thus one
surrenders to it, not considering his present body. Similarly, by
mental adjustments one dreams at night of living under different
circumstances, in different bodies, and forgets his actual position.
Under this same process, one gives up his present body and accepts
another [tathii dehiintara-priiptil;l].
PURPORT
Transmigration of the soul is very clearly explained in this verse. One
sometimes forgets his present body and thinks of his childhood body, a
body of the past, and of how one was playing, jumping, talking and so on.
When the material body is no long workable, it becomes dust: "For dust
Srimad-Bhagavatam
68
thou art, and unto dust shalt thou return." But when the body again
mixes with the five material elements-earth, water, fire, air and
also when we are awake in contemplation. One must understand that the
process of mental speculation develops a new type of body that does not
actually
exist.
If
one
can
understand
the
nature
of
the
mind
(manorathena) and its thinking, feeling and willing, one can very easily
ness, and one must purify his consciousness from material to spiritual,
(9.34),
one should always engage in His service and worship Him as the supreme
great, and one should always offer Him obeisances. In the material world
one is always a servant of a greater person, and in the spiritual world our
(6.47):
Text
41]
Ktfl!I.la:
Introduction
69
(14.26):
miim ca yo 'vyabhiciirer,ta
bhakti-yogena sevate
sa gur:r,iin samatityaitan
brahma-bhuyaya kalpate
"One who engages in full devotional service, who does not fall down in
any circumstance, at once transcends the modes of material nature and
thus comes to the level of Brahman." One must learn the secret of suc
cess from the Vedic literatures, especially when the cream of Vedic
knowledge is presented by Bhagavad-gitii as it is.
Because the mind is ultimately controlled by the Supreme Personality
of Godhead, JJ.a, the word apasmrti/:t is significant. Forgetfulness of
one's own identity is called apasmrti/:t. This apasmrti/:t can be controlled
by the Supreme Lord, for the Lord says, matta/:t smrtir jfiiinam
apohanam ca: "From Me come remembrance, knowledge and forgetful
ness." Instead of allowing one to forget one's real position, JJ.a can
revive one's original identity at the time of one's death, even though the
(Canto
Srimad-Bhagavatam
70
10,
Ch.
mind may be flickering. Although the mind may work imperfectly at the
time of death, l?l}.a gives a devotee shelter at His lotus feet. Therefore
when a devotee gives up his body, the mind does not take him to another
material body
Bhagavad-gita (2.20),
na
not die when the body is destroyed. Rather, the soul takes on another
body.
TEXT 42
qii:JI"'.
6
RIt{1q qq
ctl
"'
git1
q11
..-Q.
tiIMij,;
IIIISIII
I
o:
11\/11
Text 42]
71
body turns totally into matter); guu- (the mind, not being liberated,
becomes attached) to the material qualities; maya-raciteu-where the
material energy creates a similar body; dehi-the spirit soul who accepts
such a body; asau-he; prapadyamana-being surrendered (to such a
condition); saha-with; tena-a similar body; jayate-takes birth.
TRANSLATION
At the time of death, according to the thinking, feeling and will
ing of the mind, which is involved in fruitive activities, one
receives a particular body. In other words, the body develops ac
cording to the activities of the mind. Changes of body are due to
the flickering of the mind, for otherwise the soul could remain in
its original, spiritual body.
PURPORT
One can very easily understand that the mind is constantly flickering,
changing in the quality of its thinking, feeling and willing. This is
explained by Arjuna in Bhagavad-gita
(6.34):
72
Srimad-Bhagavatam
(Canto
10,
Ch.
however, by the grace of Krf?I.J.a one can very easily control it. Therefore
constantly, for the holy name of the Lord is nondifferent from Hari, the
Supreme Person.
and one will have to transmigrate from one type of body to another he
cause the mind is trained only in relation to the material elements, or, in
Maya-sukhaya
bharam udvahato vimill;lhan (Bhag. 7.9.43). Rascals (vimul)han), being
enjoy life temporarily, hut they must give up the body at the time of
death, when everything is taken away by K:rr?I.J.a's external energy
this life is lost, and one must automatically accept a new body by the
force of material nature. In this life one may have constructed a very tall
skyscraper, hut in the next life, because of one's mentality, one may have
to accept a body like that of a cat, a dog, a tree or perhaps a demigod.
Karar:tam gur:ta
sango 'sya sad-asad-yoni-janmasu (Bg. 13.22). The spirit soul takes
birth in higher and lower species of life only because of his association
higher planets; those in the mode of passion live on the earthly planets;
welfare activity for human society. The saner section of human society
Text 43]
_KrJ].a: Introduction
73
must therefore take this movement very seriously for the benefit of all
humanity. To save oneself from the repetition of birth and death, one
must purify his consciousness. Sarvopi.idhi-vinirmuktam tat-paratvena
nirmalam. One must be freed from all designations-"! am American,"
"I am Indian," "I am this," "I am that" -and come to the platform of
understanding that l(rQ.a is the original master and we are His eternal
servants. When the senses are purified and engaged in l(rQ.a's service,
one achieves the highest perfection. HrikeTJ-U hrikesa-sevenam bhaktir
ucyate. The l(rI).a consciousness movement is a movement of bhakti
yoga. Vairagya-vidya-nija-bhakti-yoga. By following the principles of
this movement, one becomes disassociated from material mental concoc
tions and is established on the original platform of the eternal relation
ship between the living entity and the Supreme Personality of Godhead
as servant and master. This, in summary, is the purpose of the l(rQ.a
consciousness movement.
TEXT 43
\itiiRI4:
......
m 1
((4+Utt i(G4
g (tnt61 f.lamRI 1111
jyotir yathaivodaka-parthivev ada],
samira-veganugatam vibhavyate
evam sva-maya-racitev asau puman
gu1JeU raganugato vimuhyati
jyotib,-the luminaries in the sky, such as the sun, the moon and the
stars; yatha-as; eva-indeed; udaka-in water; parthiveu-or in
other liquids, like oil; adab,-directly; samira-vega-anugatam-being
forced by the movements of the wind; vibhavyate-appear in different
shapes; evam-in this way; sva-maya-raciteu-in the situation created
by one's mental concoctions; asau-the living entity; puman-person;
gu1Jeu-in the material world, manifested by the modes of nature;
raga-anugatab,-according to his
bewildered by identification.
attachment;
vimuhyati-becomes
Srimad-Bhagavatam
74
TRANSLATION
When the luminaries in the sky, such as the moon, the sun and
the stars, are reflected in liquids like oil or water, they appear to be
This verse gives a very good example by which to understand the dif
ferent positions of the eternal spiritual soul in the mterial world and
how the soul takes on different bodies
(dehantara-prapti/:1,}.
The moon is
maya,
sonality of Godhead, the living entity thinks that he is this person, that
person, American, Indian, cat, dog, tree or whatever. This is called
maya.
the soul does not belong to any shape of this material world, one is situ
ated on the spiritual platform
(brahma-bhuta).
nirakara,
or formlessness.
This formlessness, however, does not mean that the soul has no form.
The soul has form, but the external, agitating form he has acquired be
cause of material contamination is false. Similarly, God is also described
as nirakiira, which means that God has no material form but is sac-cid
ananda-vigraha. The living entity is part and parcel of the supreme sac
cid-ananda-vigraha, but his material forms are temporary, or illusory.
Both the living entity and the Supreme Lord have original, spiritual
forms
(sac-cid-ananda-vigraha),
change His form. The Lord appears as He is, whereas the living entity
appears because material nature forces him to accept different forms.
Text
43]
Kftl}a:
Introduction
75
When the living entity receives these different forms, he identifies with
them, and not with his original, spiritual form. As soon as the living en
tity returns to his original, spiritual form and understanding, he im
mediately surrenders to the supreme form, the Personality of Godhead.
This is explained in Bhagavad-gita
(7.19).
jiianavan mam prapadyate. When the living entity, after many, many
births in different forms, returns to his original form of Kra con
sciousness, he immediately surrenders unto the lotus feet of the supreme
form, Kra. This is liberation. As the Lord says in Bhagavad-gita
(18.54):
brahma-bhuta prasanniitma
na socati na kariati
sama sarve$u bhute$U
mad-bhaktim labhate param
"One who is thus transcendentally situated at once realizes the Supreme
Brahman and becomes fully joyful. He never laments nor desires to have
anything; he is equally disposed to every living entity. In that state he at
tains pure devotional service unto Me." Surrender unto the suprme
form is the result of bhakti. This bhakti, or understanding of one's own
position, is the complete liberation. As long as one is under an imper
sonal understanding of the Absolute Truth, he is not in pure knowledge,
but must still struggle for pure knowledge. Kleso 'dhikataras te$dm
avyaktasakta-cetasam (Bg.
12.5).
[Canto
Srimad-Bhagavatam
76
10,
Ch.
transcendentally situ
(tri
from the influence of the three modes of material nature and revive his
original, spiritual body by engaging in the service of the Supreme Per
son, K{!?a. As long as one is materially attached, one must accept the
process of birth, death, old age and disease. One is therefore advised that
an intelligent person, instead of being entangled in so-called good and
bad fruitive activities, should engage his life in advancing in K:r;-!?a con
(tyaktva
deham punar janma naiti), he will return home, back to Godhead.
TEXT 44
Text 44]
77
atmanab,-his own;
Instead of being inimical toward other living entities, one should act
piously by engaging in the service of the Supreme Lord, thus avoiding a
fearful situation both in this life and in the next. In this regard, the
following moral instruction by the great politician Ca1,1akya Pal,l9ita is
very meaningful:
tyaja durjana-sarhsargarh
bhaja sadhu-samagamam
kuru puJJyam aho ratrarh
smara nityam anityatam
One should give up the company of devils, demons and nondevotees and
should always associate with devotees and saintly persons. One should al
ways act piously, thinking that this life is temporary, and not be attached
to temporary happiness and distress. The 1,1a consciousness movement
is teaching all of human society this principle of becoming 1,1a con
scious and thus solving the problems of life forever
(tyaktva deharh
Srimad-Bhagavatam
78
TEXT 45
ilm1 f,ti!hlqu
tava-your;
anuja-younger
sister;
bald-innocent
innocent.
dina-vatsalatt-very
compassionate
to
the
poor
and
TRANSLATION
As your younger sister', this poor girl Devaki is like your own
daughter and deserves to be affectionately maintained. You are
merciful, and therefore you should not kill her. Indeed, she
deserves your affection.
"
TEXT 46
;r
mstq un
ril46
q;jEf6:
1
s:;
11\?"11
sri-suka uvaca
evam sa samabhir bhedair
bodhyamano 'pi darur;tatt
na nyavartata kauravya
puru$adan anuvratatt
sri-sukatt uvaca -Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said; evam-in this way;
Text 47]
79
pura-adan-the
the good instructions given by Vasudeva. He did not care about the
lij61:
3Im
Rt
$f ot.ll''
"
'311...-44'lRI ll'd\911
to
do
something;
tasya-of
him
vicin
Although Vasudeva saw the imminent danger that his wife Devaki
would be killed, he was convinced of his welfare because at his birth the
80
Srimad-Bhagavatam
-ftm 41ftf4:ili4( I
- ;r : lltgll
mrtyur buddhimatiipohyo
yavad buddhi-balodayam
yady asau na nivarteta
niiparadho 'sti dehinal],
mrtyul],-death; buddhi-mata-by an intelligent person; apohyal],
buddhi-ba la udayam-intelli
gence and bodily strength are present; yadi-if; asau-that (death ) ; na
nivar teta-cannot be checked; na-not; apariidhal],-ofiense; asti
there is; dehinal],-of the person in danger of death.
TRANSLATION
As long as he has intelligence and bodily strength, an intelligent
person must try to avoid death. This is the duty of every embodied
It is natural for a person facing untimely death to try his best to save
himself. This is one's duty. Although death is sure, everyone should try
to avoid it and not meet death without opposition because every living
soul is by nature eternal. Because death is a punishment imposed in the
condemned life of material existence, the Vedic culture is based" on
avoiding death
to_avoid death and rebirth by cultivating spiritual life and should not
submit to death without struggling to survive. One who is not trying to
stop death is not an intelligent human being. Because Devaki was face to
face with imminent death, it was V asudeva's duty to save her, as he was
Text 50]
81
F!_ UIIflt41'( I
wn it t;, ftllr
Nq Ft ;r qf(( I
n&u 't : q;HJqijd II II
....
Srimad-Bhagavatam
82
to die at the hands of my son, one of my sons may kill him. For the
time being, let me promise to hand over my sons so that Kamsa will
PURPORT
TEXT 51
"" fcltilt4011fwtf't=ijtfi6
ft: M4tt0i4:
:i:A:s:J..rinP.biin'k:::a :
II'-\ 11
wood and sets fire to the next, the reason is destiny. Similarly,
Text 52]
83
when a living being accepts one kind of body and leaves aside
another, there is no other reason than unseen destiny.
PURPORT
When there is a fire in a village, the fire sometimes jumps over one
house and burns another. Similarly, when there is a forest fire, the fire
sometimes jumps over one tree and catches another. Why this happens,
no one can say. One may set forth some imaginary reason why the
nearest tree or house did not catch fire whereas a tree or house in a dis
tant place did, but actually the reason is destiny. This reason also applies
to the transmigration of the soul, by which a prime minister in one life
may become a dog in the next. The work of unseen destiny cannot be
ascertained by practical experimental knowledge, and therefore one must
be satisfied by reasoning that everything is done by supreme providence.
TEXT 52
tm
t'
qyq 'i4G\k'lf;tG\lwt(
I
"...,..9;:
TRANSLATION
Mter thus considering the matter as far as his knowledge would
allow, Vasudeva submitted his proposal to the sinful Kamsa with
great respect.
84
Srimad-Bhigavatam
TEXT 53
'"'
'"'
t
:1!11 ...::.!]
prasanna-vadandmbhojo
nrsamsam nirapatrapam
manasa dayamanena
vihasann idam abravit
prasanna-vadana-ambhoja- Vasudeva, who externally presented
himself as if very happy; nrsamsam-unto the most cruel; nirapa
trapam-shameless Kamsa; manasd-with the mind; dayamanena
which was full of anxiety and sorrow; vihasan- smiling externally;
Vasudeva's mind was full of anxiety because his wife was facing
Text 54]
85
violent gentleman. Rather, he tried his best to fight the battle and be
victorious.
TEXT 54
(14fi4q,
11\111
sri-vasudeva uvdca
na
na-not;
hi-indeed;
Srimad-Bbigavatam
86
TEXT 55
.iRR
\flflliittij (6lliA('fld I
sfq iRJ: stlfit 11'-\'-\11
sri-suka uvaca
svasur vadhan nivavrte
kamsas tad-vakya-sara-vit
vasudevo 'pi tam prita/:t
praas_ya praviSad grham
sri-suka/:t uvaca- ri
(Devaki);
(Kamsa);
TRANSLATION
pleased with Karltsa, pacified him further and entered his own
house.
PURPORT
Although Kamsa was a sinful demon, he believed that Vasudeva would
never deviate from his word. The character of a pure devotee like
Vasudeva is such that even so great a demon as Kamsa firmly believed in
his words and was satisfied. Yasyasti bhaktir bhagavaty akiiicana sarvair
(Bhag. 5.18.12).
TEXT 56
(1461 I
'!_ m -+.q(1'(4 11'-\ u
3N
r/
Text 56]
87
tattva, who are part and parcel of the Lord (mamaivamso jiva-loke jiva
bhuta/;l sanatana/:l}. If we accept Kt!?l).a as the Supreme Personality of
Godhead and worship Him, all the parts and expansions of the Lord
are automatically worshiped. Sarvarhar;tam acyutejya (Bhiig. 4.31.14).
Kt!?Qa is known as Acyuta (senayor ubhayor madhye ratham sthapaya
me
Srimad-Bhiigavatam
88
litiTM+t.-d
(111;{'$.-fin
3141+1Ri m mst((RINf:
I
11'-\11
kirtimantam prathamajam
kamsayanakadundubhi/:L
arpayam asa krcchrer;ta
so 'nrtad ativihvala/:L
kirtimantam-by the name Krrtiman; prathama-jam-the first-born
baby; kamsaya-unto Kamsa; anakadundubhi/:L-Vasudeva; arpayam
asa-delivered;
sai,L-he
(Vasudeva);
breaking his promise. Thus with great pain he delivered his first
born son, named Kirtiman, into the hands of Kamsa.
PURPORT
Text
58]
89
58
ft:l
ftt4il4iG\tifUif'l61wtli(
kim du/:tsaham nu sadhanam
vidam kim apek$itam
kim akaryam kadaryaTJ,am
dustyajam kim dhrtatmanam
kim-what is; du/:tsaham-painful; nu-indeed; sadhanam-for
saintly persons; vidam-of learned persons; kim apek$itam-what is
dependence; kim akaryam-what is forbidden work; kadaryaTJ,am-of
persons in the lowest grade; dustyajam-very difficult to give up; kim
what is; dhrta-atmanam-of persons who are self-realized.
TRANSLATION
What is painful for saintly persons who strictly adhere to the
truth? How could there not be independence for pure devotees
who know the Supreme Lord
as
Srimad-Bhagavatam
90
qt: ott'4f(l( I
iif!ij!4'11 st(ijf't((ii14\(( H
dr!vii samatvam tac chaure
satye caiva vyavasthitim
karilsas t!a-manii rajan
prahasann idam abrav'it
dr!vii-by seeing; samatvam-being equipoised, undisturbed in dis
satye-in truthful
rajan-
abravit-said.
TRANSLATION
My dear King Parikit, when Kamsa saw that Vasudeva, being
PURPORT
The word
Ka:rhsa to be killed. In
should not be very eager to be happy, nor should one be very much dis
turbed by material distress. Lord K:ra advised Arjuna:
Text 60]
91
matra-sparsds tu kaunteya
sitor:w-sukha-dub,kha-dab,
agamapayino 'nityas
tams titi/cyasva bharata
2.14)
II
0 Vasudeva, you may take back your child and go home. I have
no fear of your first child. It is the eighth child of you and Devaki I
am
to be killed.
Srimad-Bhagavatam
92
TEXT 61
44141'1$ : I
ij&\l'lftt+R'tJisfiifltijk+l'1: ll ll
+1114
;'ffAI'1;:((ij
that
place;
anakadundubhiJ:r,-Vasudeva;
tat-vakyam-the
na
abhya
words
(of
Vasudeva agreed and took his child hack home, but because
TEXTS 62-63
'1;:((1tlllr:
'4ij'41tlt '4'lfttltlt :
1 ijlstlttl 6' I
lr i+l34iji: II
nandadya ye vraje gopa
yas cdmi$arh ca yoita/:t
vmz.ayo vasudevadya
devaky-adya yadu-striya/:t
sarve vai devata-praya
ubhayor api bharata
jfidtayo bandhu-suhrdo
ye ca kamsam anuvrata/:t
Text 63]
,93
devaki-adya-headed
by
vai-indeed;
ubhayo-of
both
devata-praya-were
Nanda
inhabitants
of
heaven;
api-indeed;
bandhu
(4.8),
the Lord's
94
(Canto
Srimad-Bhagavatam
10,
Ch.
6.41)
Some devotees,
part of a demon-killer, and a friend, son and brother to His devotees, and
thus these devotees were all summoned.
TEXT 64
:1
l{it+iltt410ilwti :q tl44( II II
etat kamsaya .bhagavaii
chaSamsabhyetya narada
bhamer bharayama r;tanam
daityanam ca vadhodyamam
etat-all these words about the Yadu family and V:r:Q.i family;
kamsaya-unto King Karilsa; bhagavan-the most powerful representa-
Text 64]
95
sa.Samsa-informed
TRANSLATION
Once . the great saint Niirada approached Karilsa and informed
him of how the demoniac persons who were a great burden on the
earth were going to be killed. Thus Kamsa was placed into great
fear and doubt.
PURPORT
It has already been discussed that mother earth implored Lord Brahma
to give her relief from the distress created by the burdensome demons
and that Lord Brahma informed her that Lord :r;ta Himself was going
to appear. K:r:r;ta says in Bhagavad-gita
(4.8):
paritrar;taya sadhunam
vinasaya ca dkrtam
dharma-sarilsthapanarthaya
sambhavami yuge yuge
Whenever there is a burden created by the demons and whenever the in
is stated that the demigods are different parts of the Supreme Personality
of Godhead. As it is the duty of the parts of the body to serve the whole,
business also. Because the people of Kali-yuga are fallen, however, Sri
Caitanya Mahaprabhu, out of kindness for them, did not bring any
Srimad-Bhagavatam
96
(Canto
10,
Ch.
can be happy. The program for the conditioned soul is fully described in
tendencies will be killed, and they will become first-class devotees, happy
in this life and in the next.
TEXTS 65-66
SIAfiff;tl m I
fitn :q \1111
=if f;r4t4lt I
Ri {tql(wtllill
r$er vinirgame kamso
yadan matva suran iti
devakya garbha-sambhatam
vi$7Juril ca sva-vadham prati
devakim vasudevam ca
nigrhya nigat;lair grhe
jatam jatam ahan putram
tayor ajana-sarikaya
r$e -of the great sage Narada; vinirgame-on the departure (after
Text
66]
97
TRANSLATION
After the departure of the great saint Niirada, Kamsa thought
that all the members of the Yadu dynasty were demigods and that
any of the children born from the womb of Devaki might be
Viu. Fearing his death, Karitsa arrested Vasudeva and Devaki and
chained them with iron shackles. Suspecting each of the children
to be Viu, Kamsa killed them one after another because of the
prophecy that Viu would kill him.
PURPORT
Srila ]iva Gosviimi, in his notes on this verse, has mentioned how
one of the sons of Devaki might he Vi?x;tU. Because Vi?x;tU was to kill him,
Karhsa should not spare any of Devaki's children, Narada Muni advised.
crease his sinful activities so that Kr!?x;ta would soon appear to kill him.
Upon receiving the instructions of Narada Muni, Kamsa killed all the
The word ajana-sankaya indicates that Lord Vif?x;tu never takes birth
(ajana) and that He therefore appeared as Kr!?x;ta, taking birth just like a
human being (miinU$irh tanum asritam). Kamsa attempted to kill all the
were horn, He would not he killed. Actually it came to pass that when
Vif?I,lU appeared as Kr!?x;ta, Kamsa could not kill Him; rather, as foretold,
it was He who killed Kamsa. One should know in truth how Kr?x;ta, who
takes His birth transcendentally, acts to kill the demons hut is never
Srimad-Bhagavatam
98
[Canto I 0, Ch. I
killed. When one perfectly understands Kr!?Q.a in this way, through the
medium of astra, one becomes immortal. As the Lord says in Bhagavad
gitii
(4.9):
tim tK I
tUtwil u: ll\911
miitaram pitaram bhriitfn
sarviims ca suhrdas tathii
ghnanti hy asutrpo lubdhii
riijiina/:t priiyao bhuvi
miitaram-unto the mother; pitaram-unto the father; bhriitfn
unto brothers; sarviin ca-and anyone else; suhrda/:1,-friends; tathii
as well as; ghnanti-they kill (as it is practically seen); hi-indeed; asu
trpa/:1,-those who envy the lives of others for their personal sense grati
fication;
lubdhii/:1,-greedy;
PURPORT
We have seen in the history of India that Aurangzeb killed his brother
and nephews and imprisoned his father to fulfill political ambitions.
Text 68]
99
There have been many similar instances, and Karhsa was the same type
of king. Karhsa did not hesitate to kill his nephews and imprison his
sister and his father. For demons to do such things is not astonishing.
Nonetheless, although Karhsa was a demon, he was aware that Lord
ViJ.lU cannot be killed, and thus he attained salvation. Even partial
understanding of the activities of Lord ViJ.lU makes one eligible for
salvation. Karhsa knew a little about J.la-that He could not be
killed-and therefore he attained salvation although he thought of
ViJ.lu, J.la, as an enemy. What then is to be said of one who knows
1.1a perfectly from the descriptions of sastras like Bhagavad-gita? It is
therefore the duty of everyone to read Bhagavad-gita and understand
J.la perfectly. This will make one's life successful.
TEXT 68
sa-he (Karhsa);
vyarudhyata-acted
inimically.
TRANSLATION
In his previous birth, Karilsa had been a great demon named
Kalanemi and been killed by Vi17J].U. Upon learning this informa
tion from Niirada, Karilsa became envious of everyone connected
with the Yadu dynasty.
PURPORT
Persons who are demons, enemies of the Supreme Personality of God
head, are called asuras. As stated in Bhagavad-gita, the asuras, because
Srimad-Bhagavatam
100
TEXT 69
mRI
A ((1'111. liDir:
ugrasenam ca pitaram
yadu-bhojiindhakadhipam
svayam nigrhya bubhuje
silraseniin mahii-balatt
ugrasenam-unto Ugrasena; ca-and; pitaram-who was his own
father; yadu-of the Yadu dynasty; bhoja-of the Bhoja dynasty;
andhaka-of the Andhaka dynasty; adhipam-the king; svayam-per
sonally; nigrhya-subduing; bubhuje- enjoyed; silraseniin-all the
states known as Siirasena; maha-balatt-the extremely powerful Kamsa.
TRANSLATION
Karitsa, the most powerful son of Ugrasena, even imprisoned his
own father, the King of the Yadu, Bhoja and Andhaka dynasties,
and personally ruled the states known as Stirasena.
PURPORT
The state known as Mathurii was also included within the states known
as Siirasena.
Notes]
101
body. For example, when one is awake one does business and talks with
customers, and similarly in dreams one meets various customers, talks
about business and gives quotations. Madhvacarya says, therefore, that
dreams take place according to what one sees, hears and remembers.
When one reawakens, of course, one forgets the body of the dream. This
forgetfulness is called
scribed. As stated in
ro.rtmani).
102
Srimad-Bhagavatam
[Canto
l 0,
Ch.
fire and although the nearest tree is spared a distant tree catches fire, this
may appear to be chance. Similarly, one may seem to get different types
mind. The mind flickers between accepting and rejecting, and according
to the acceptance and rejection of the mind, we receive different types of
bodies, although we superficially seem to obtain these bodies by chance.
Even if we accept the theory of chance, the immediate cause for the
with His parts and parcels or His partial manifestation. In this connec
tion, Sridhara Svami says that K:rQa is one hundred percent Bhagavan
bhagaviin svayam. Srila }iva Gosvami says that the word amsena means
that K:rQa appeared with all His plenary expansions. The words amsena
plained very clearly. Srila Visvanatha Cakravarti Thakura also notes that
Notes]
103
lotus feet of the Lord, giving up all other systems of religion, is actually
dharma-fila, perfectly religious.
The word nivrtta-tar$ai refers to one who no longer has any material
desires (sarvopiidhi-vinirmuktam). One may have many material desires
because of contamination in this material world, but when one is com
pletely free from all material desires, he is called nivrtta-tr$1Jn, which in
dicates that he no longer has any thirst for material enjoyment. Svamin
krtartho
'smi
Materialistic per
sons want some material profit from executing devotional service, but
this is not the purpose of service. The perfection of devotional service
lies in complete surrender unto the lotus feet of l(rQ.a, with no material
desires. One who surrenders in this way is already liberated. ]ivan
mukta
anything other than devotional service will diminish one's freedom from
material desires, but when one is free from all such desires one is called
nivrtta-tar$ai.
Vina pa5u-ghnat. The word pau means "animal." An animal killer,
pa5u-ghna, cannot enter into Q.a consciousness. In our .KrIJ.a con
sciousness movement, therefore, animal killing is completely prohibited.
Uttamasloka-guT}iinuviidat. The word uttamasloka means "one who is
famous as the best of those who are good." The Lord is good in all
circumstances. That is His natural reputation. His goodness is unlimited,
and He uses it unlimitedly. A devotee is also sometimes described as
uttamasloka, meaning that he is eager to glorify the Supreme Personality
of Godhead or the Lord's devotees. Glorifying the Lord and glorifying
104
Srimad-Bhagavatam
(Canto
10,
Ch.
the Lord's devotees are the same. Or, rather, glorifying the devotee is
more important than glorifying the Lord directly. Narottama dasa
holy name and glorifying the Supreme Lord are the universal remedy for
all the miseries of materialistic life. Persons who desire to be freed from
this material world are called mumuu. Such persons can understand
the miseries of materialistic life, and by glorifying the activities of the
Lord they can be released from all these miseries. The transcendental
sound vibrations concerning the Lord's name, fame, form, qualities and
paraphernalia are all nondiflerent from the Lord. Therefore the very
sound vibration of the Lord's glorification and name are pleasing to the
ears, and by understanding the absolute nature of the Lord's name, form
and qualities the devotee becomes joyful. Even those who are not devo
tees, however, enjoy the pleasing narrations of the Lord's transcendental
activities. Even ordinary persons not very much advanced in K.r:Q.a con
engaged in sense gratification, they also may take pleasure in hearing the
pastimes of the Lord, like His fighting on the Battlefield of Kuruketra
and His dancing in V.rndavana with the gopis.
qualities of the Supreme Lord, such as His affection for mother Yasoda
and His friends the cowherd boys and His loving attitude toward the
Notes]
105
gopis. The Lord's devotees like Maharaja Yudhi!?thira are also described
cluding the mumu/cyus, the vimuktas and the karmis, should chant and
hear the glories of the Lord, and in this way everyone will benefit.
Lord is equally beneficial to all, for those who are muktas, liberated, it is
Third Chapter, verse twenty, because pure devotees, who no longer have
any material desires, surrender fully to the lotus feet of the Lord, they
always merge in the ocean of bliss by chanting and hearing the Lord's
holy name. According to this verse, devotees like Niirada and other resi
dents of Svetadvipa are seen always engaged in chanting the holy name
of the Lord because by such chanting they are always externally and in
becoming liberated by chanting the holy name of the Lord. Karmis like
to create something pleasing to their ears and hearts, and although they
sometimes like to chant or hear the glories of the Lord, they do not do it
remember the activities of the Lord, and by this process they are fully
satisfied, even though these may seem like topics of sense gratification.
pleasures, Parik!?it Maharaja has used the words virajyeta pumiin. The
word pumiin refers to any person, whether man, woman or in-between.
the bodily concept of life is surely killing himself by not making spiritual
progress. Such a person is called pa8u-ghna. Especially excluded from
Srimad-Bhagavatam
I06
(Canto
I 0,
Ch.
spiritual life are the animal hunters, who are not interested in hearing
and chanting the holy name of the Lord. Such hunters are always
unhappy, both in this life and in the next. It is therefore said that a
hunter should neither die nor live because for such persons both living
and dying are troublesome. Animal hunters are completely different
from ordinary karmis, and thus they have been excluded from the pro
cess of hearing and chanting. Vina pau-ghniit. They cannot enter into
the transcendental pleasure of chanting and hearing the holy name of the
Lord.
The word maha-ratha refers to a great hero who can fight alone
against eleven thousand other heroes, and the word atiratha, as found in
text five, refers to one who can fight against an unlimited number. This
is mentioned in the Mahabharata as follows:
ekiidasa-sahasraTJ,i
yodhayed yas tu dhanvinam
astra-sastra-praviTJ,a ca
maha-ratha iti smrta/:l
amitan yodhayed yas tu
samprokto 'tirathas tu sa/:l
This is the description given in the Brhad-vaTJ,ava-to$aTJ,i by
Sanatana Gosvami.
,
Maya-manu$yasya
Sri:la
yogamaya
silyate sa-caracaram).
Notes]
107
nary human being, although He is the controller of both the material and
spiritual energies. The Lord is the Supreme Person, Puruottama, but
because we are deluded by yogamdya, He appears to be an ordinary per
son. Ultimately, however, yogamaya induces even a nondevotee to
understand the Lord as the Supreme Person, Puruottama. In Bhagavad
gita we find two statements given by the Supreme Personality of
10.10)
Thus for
Srimad-Bhagavatam
108
(Canto
10,
Ch.
sonality of Godhead, who saves one from the bad condition of material
existence. The Lord is called mukunda because He not only saves the
As for Kesava, ka means Brahma, and iSa means Lord Siva. The Per
went to the shore of the ocean of milk and offered their prayers through
that the demigods cannot directly approach Lord ViQu, who lies on the
ocean of milk, or enter His abode. This is also clearly stated in the
Mahabharata,
Mok$a-dharma,
and
the
next
chapter of
Srimad
from }(rf;!Qa, who resides in Goloka V:rndavana. When it is said that the
demigods offered prayers to the Lord by chanting the
Puru$a-sukta, this
indicates that they pleased the Lord by enunciating prayers of bhakti.
The word vr$akapi refers to one who satisfies His devotee in every way
and frees His devotee from all material anxieties. Vr$a refers to religious
Lord can still enjoy the supermost comforts of the heavenly planets. The
Notes]
109
that the Lord appeared to please RukmiQi and RadhiiriiQi. Priya means
"the most beloved."
"0 demigods, even great sages, following the order of ViQu, appeared in
word svara! has been used to indicate that Baladeva always exists in His
master of the world, who have extended Yourself throughout the entire
Devaki and bewildered mother Yasodii. These pastimes are very confi
bewilder His associates in His pastimes and bewilder demons like Kamsa.
110
Srimad-Bhagavatam
1,1a's
Notes]
Ill
there were asuras headed by Salva and katriyas like Duryodhana who
Garu<:\a and the universal form, and who could not understand :l<r!?Qa to
that the maya which drags a person from the Supreme Personality of
Godhead is called ja4amaya, and the maya which acts on the transcen
:l<r!?Qa as his son. Such feelings of parental love in the spiritual world are
the place where Hari, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, lives eter
Supreme Lord is eternal, and His abode is also eternal. Goloka eva
means that when the Supreme Lord descends on the surface of the world,
His original abode is not vacant, for He can remain in His original abode
112
Srimad-Bhiigavatam
Gosvaml. Because K:r?J).a was soon coming as the son of Vasudeva and
bhrury,e arbhake kuk$av ity adi. When Karhsa was about to kill Devaki,
two situations-in this life and the next-is called bheda. Thus
Vasudeva used both siima and bheda to pacify Karhsa. Praising Karhsa's
questions about fame and welfare, and arousing fear of the sinful act of
The Bhoja dynasty refers to those who were simply interested in sense
praise. Karhsa would accept calves as a form of revenue from his poor
very well that he could not by force rescue Devaki from the imminent
killed her, a great fight would have ensued among the other members of
the family. Kamsa refrained from provoking this great danger of a
family fight, for it would have caused many persons to lose their lives.
Notes]
113
were known as the a{l-garbhas, or six garbhas, and they were all equally
Siddha, CaraQa or human being, nor by great sages who are perfect in
their penances and austerities." Brahma understood their purpose and
fulfilled their desire. But when HiraQyakasipu came to know of these
events, he was very angry at his grandsons. "You have given up my
association and have gone to worship Lord Brahma," he said, "and
therefore I no longer have any affection for you. You have tried to save
yourselves from the hands of the demigods, but I curse you in this way:
Your father will take birth as Karhsa and kill all of you because you will
take birth as sons of Devaki." Because of this curse, the grandsons of
Hirai_lyakasipu had to take birth from the womb of Devaki and be killed
by Karhsa, although he was previously their father. This description is
Kirtiman was the third incarnation. In his first incarnation he was known
as Smara and was the son of Marici, and later he became the son of
Kalanemi. This is mentioned in the histories.
Srimad-Bhagavatam
114
past.
The great saint Narada descended from the heavenly planets to the
forest of Mathurii and sent his messenger to Karhsa. When the messenger
leader of the
asuras,
fire, and free from all tinges of sinful activities. Karhsa accepted Narada
as his guest, offered him respectful obeisances and gave him a golden
seat, brilliant like the sun. Narada was a friend of the King of heaven,
and thus he told Karhsa, the son of Ugrasena, "My dear hero, you have
satisfied me with a proper reception, and therefore I shall tell you some
thing secret and confidential. While I was coming here from Nanda
many holy places, and finally we saw the holy Ganges. While Lord
Brahmii was consulting the other demigods at the top of Sumeru Hill, I
was also present with my stringed instrument, the Vi7Ja. I shall tell you
confidentially that the meeting was held just to plan to kill the
asuras,
Vr:tu-parva 1.2-16)
Hari-vamsa,
No one can blame Niiradaji for encouraging Karhsa to kill the sons of
Devaki. The saint Narada is always a well-wisher for human society, and
attain salvation from his nefarious activities, and this too would very
Srila Visvanatha
times did things that were beneficial to the demigods and the demons
Notes]
The
115
society.
Thus end the Bhaktivedanta purports of the Tenth Canto, First
Chapter, of the Srimad-Bhagavatam, entitled "The Advent of Lord
Kr1Jll: Introduction."
CHAPTER TWO
entered the womb of Devaki to kill Karhsa, all the demigods understood
that the Lord was living within Devaki's womb, and therefore in venera
tion they offered Him the
Garbha-stuti prayers.
with the help of his demoniac friends like Pralamba, Baka, Cii1,1t1ra,
the members of the Yadu dynasty. Therefore, the members of the Yadu
dynasty left their homes and sought shelter in such states as Kuru,
Paiicala, Kekaya, Salva and Vidarbha. Only some of them stayed with
who was soon to appear as the eighth son of Devaki, ordered Yogamayii to
take birth from the womb of Yasodadevi. Because K:rJ:.la and His po
118
Srimad-Bhigavatam
cause the Lord was present in her heart, Devaki, as her pregnancy con
tinued, appeared effulgent. Upon seeing this effulgence, Ka:rhsa was full
of anxiety, but he could not harm Devaki because of their family rela
Devaki, all the demigods came to offer the Lord their prayers. The
Supreme Personality of Godhead, they said, is eternally the Absolute
Truth. The spiritual soul is more important than the gross body, and the
safe. When a devotee fully surrenders at the lotus feet of the Lord, he is
(4.7):
Text 2)
119
sri-suka uviica
pralamba-baka-cii7Jilra
trvarta-maha.Sanaib,
mu$#kata-dvivida
piltana-kesi-dhenukaib,
anyaiS ciisura-bhilpalair
ba7Ja-bhaumadibhir yutab,
yadilnam kadanam cakre
bali miigadha-samsrayab,
sri-sukab, uviica-Sri Sukadeva Gosviimi said; pralamba-by the
asura named Pralamba; baka-by the asura named Baka; cd7Jilra -by
the asura named CiiQiira; tr1Javarta-by the asura named TtQiivarta;
mahasanaib, -by Aghiisura; fflU$!ika -by the asura named Mutika;
ari$ta-by the asura Arita; dvivida-by the asura named Dvivida;
piltana-by Putanii; kesi-by Kesi; dhenukaib,-by Dhenuka; anyaib,
ca and by many others; asura-bhilpalaib,-by demoniac kings on the
surface of the globe; ba7Ja -by King BiiQa; bhauma by Bhaumiisura;
adibhib, -and by others as well; yutab, -being assisted; yadilnam-of
the kings of the Yadu dynasty; kadanam -persecution; cakre
regularly performed; bali-very powerful; miigadha-samsrayab,
-
TRANSLATION
Sukadeva Gosvimi said: Under the protection of Magadharija,
Srimad-Bhagavatam
120
[Canto
10,
Ch. 2
Yadubhi/:t sa
vyarudhyata. The kings of the Yadu dynasty were all devotees, but there
were many powerful demons, such as
Salva,
Text
5]
121
TEXT3
T'lf?tli_ II II
te pU)ita niviviSu/:1.
kuru-pancala-kekayan
salvan vidarbhan ni$adhan
videhan kosalan api
te-they (the kings of the Yadu dynasty); pU)ita/:1.-being persecuted;
of
the
Kekayas;
salvan-the
countries
occupied
by
the
Salvas;
Paiicilas,
Kosalas.
Kekayas,
TEXTS
4-5
tJ: : qql('(ij I
anMI II
"'
tNT
II
+r.t affl I
mft: II II
Srimad-Bhagavatam
122
[Canto I 0, Ch. 2
tam-unto Karhsa;
anurundhana-exact1y
him;
hateu-having
been
killed;
atsu-six;
baleu
( Karhsa ) ;
saptama-the
seventh;
va7J.avam-of
Lord
name
Ananta;
pracaate-is
celebrated;
garbha-embryo;
ciples and act in his service. After Karilsa, the son of Ugrasena,
her womb
as
Text6 ]
123
obliged to kill his own sons. This was a mystery. As soon as the sons of
Devaki were killed, they would return to their original place. The devo
tees wanted to see this also. Generally speaking, no one kills his own
nephews, hut Kamsa was so cruel that he did so without hesitation.
fet w 1
f;r tOIflli II II
bhagavan api viSvatma
yadanarh nija-nathanarh
yogamayarh samadiSat
ing the position of the Yadus and His other devotees; karhsa-jam
hecause of Kamsa;
nija
TRANSLATION
To protect the Yadus, His personal devotees, from Kamsa's at
tack, the Personality of Godhead, Visvitmi, the Supreme Soul of
everyone, ordered Yogamiyi
as
follows.
PURPORT
The words bhagavan api viSvatmd viditva karhsajarh bhayam are com
(kmws
Srimad-Bhagavatam
124
[Canto
10,
Ch. 2
confirmed in
Bhagavad-gita (18.61),
iSvarab, sarva-bhutanam hrd-dese 'rjuna ti$thati: "The Supreme Lord is
vi$7J-u-tattva,
fact, a pure devotee acts in such a way that he will not have his life
_spoiled by being obliged to accept another body and undergo the
tribulations of material existence. This is
bhayam,
or fear.
Bhayam
te$dm evanukampartham
aham ajnanajam tamab
nasayamy atma-bhdvastho
jnana-dipena bhdsvata
"Out of compassion for them, I, dwelling in their hearts, destroy with
the shining lamp of knowledge the darkness born of ignorance."
(Bg.
10.11)
Text 7]
125
gita
(6.47):
yoginam api sarve$dril
mad-gatenantaratmana
sraddhavan bhajate yo mam
sa me yuktatamo matal)
"Of all yogis, he who always abides in Me with great faith, worshiping
Me in transcendental loving service, is most intimately united with Me in
yoga and is the highest of all." For the bhakti-yogi, a human body is
guaranteed in his next existence, as stated by Lord Kr!1a (sucinam
Srimad-Bhagavatam
126
for
all
living
entities;
gopa-gobhib,-with
[Canto I 0, Ch. 2
cowherds
and
cows;
able for the entire world and whose nature is to bestow good for
tue upon all living entities, go to Vraja, where there live many
cowherd men and their wives. In that very beautiful land, where
many cows reside, Rohii, the wife of Vasudeva, is living at the
tTlT NROif I
m( df;r itRIR011 a- 4PI II
II
Text
8]
127
TRANSLATION
Within the womb of Devak.i is My partial plenary expansion
PURPORT
the entire universe, and the eternal mother of this incarnation is mother
Rohil)i. "Because I am going into the womb of Devaki," the Lord told
Yogamaya, "the Sea incarnation has already gone there and made suit
able arrangements so that I may live there. Now He should enter the
womb of Rohil)i, His eternal mother."
In this connection, one may ask how the Supreme Personality of God
garbhas. Does this mean that the ac;l.;.garbhasuras were equal to the
though the Lord enters the material world, He does not do so. This is ex
plained by the Lord Himself in Bhagavad-gita
(9.4-5):
mat-sthani sarva-bhiltani
na
na
ca mat-sthani bhiltani
pa5ya
me
yogam aiSvaram
Srimad-Bhagavatam
128
[Canto
10,
Ch. 2
bhata-bhrn na ca bhata-stho
mamatma bhata-bhavana
"By Me, in My unmanifested form, this entire universe is pervaded. All
beings are in Me, but I am not in them. And yet everything that is cre
ated does not rest in Me. Behold My mystic opulence! Although I am the
maintainer of all living entities, and although I am everywhere, My Self
is the very source of creation." Sarvaril khalv idam brahma. Everything
is an expansion of Brahman, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, yet
everything is not the Supreme Godhead, and He is not everywhere.
Everything rests upon Him and yet does not rest upon Him. This can be
explained only through the acintya-bhedabheda philosophy. Such truths
cannot be understood, however, unless one is a pure devotee, for the
Lord says in Bhagavad-gita
garbhiisuras were killed by Kamsa. It is said that from the mind, Marici
appears. In other words, Marici is an incarnation of the mind. Marici has
six sons: Kama, Krodha, Lobha, Moha : Mada and Matsarya (lust, anger,
greed, illusion, madness and envy). The Supreme Personality of God
head appears in pure devotional service. This is confirmed in the Vedas:
bhaktir evainaril darsayati. Only bhakti can bring one in contact with the
Supreme Personality of Godhead. The Supreme Personality of Godhead
appeared from the womb of Devaki, and therefore Devaki symbolically
Text9]
129
When a pure devotee always fears material association, his real position
of bhakti is manifested, and he naturally becomes uninterested in ma
terial enjoyment. When the six sons of Marici are killed by such fear and
one is freed from material contamination, within the womb of bhakti the
Supreme Personality of Godhead appears. Thus the seventh pregnancy of
Devaki signifies the appearance of the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
After the six sons Kama, Krodha, Lobha, Moha, Mada and Matsarya are
killed, the Sea incarnation creates a suitable situation for the appearance
:'
...."
mm
hffl
"' l<::l>ql.
ttl
N
'tlitill'll
athdham amsa-bhdgena
nanda-patnyam bhavyasi
atha-therefore;
aham-1;
amsa-bhdgena-by My plenary ex
(10.42)
Bhagavad-gitd
Srimad-Bhagavatam
130
[Canto
10,
Ch. 2
athava bahunaitena
kim jiidtena tavarjuna
vitabhyaham idam krtsnam
ekamsena sthito jagat
"But what need is there, Arjuna, for all this detailed knowledge? With a
single fragment of Myself I pervade and support this entire universe."
Everything is situated as a part of the Supreme Lord's potency. In regard
to Lord !?I;ta's appearance in the womb of Devaki, Brahmii played a
part also because on the bank of the milk ocean he requested the
Supreme Personality of Godhead to appear. A part was also played by
Baladeva, the first expansion of Godhead. Similarly, Yogamiiyii, who ap
peared as the daughter of mother Yasodii, also played a part. Thus
tattva, vir:tu-tattva
and
sakti-tattva
fiva
subhe,
blessed. Take power from Me, and you will be able to do it." By the grace
of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, anyone can do anything, for the
Lord is present in everything, all things being His parts and parcels
(amsa-bhagena)
Balariima was only fifteen days older than Qa. By the blessings of
I;ta, Yogamiiyii became the daughter of mother Yasodii, but by the
supreme will she was not able to enjoy the parental love of her father and
mother. !?I;ta, however, although not actually born from the womb of
mother Yasoda, enjoyed the parental love of mother Yasodii and Nanda.
By the blessings of ?I;ta, Yogamayii was able to achieve the reputation
of being the daughter of mother Yasodii
, , who also became famous by the
blessings of !?J;ta. Yasodii means "one who gives fame."
TEXT 10
3lQ4fW'ij
'{'flq6:1(iirefii:
ijl'iq I
ijfii'NOiaJq II
II
Text 10]
131
the
best of
the
dhapa-by incense;
maya-sakti,
soul, and Paramiltma, the supreme soul. Those who are interested in
132
Srimad-Bhigavatam
iitma-tattva
Therefore
srotavyiidini rajendra
nrr;tiim santi sahasra5a/:t
apayatiim iitma-tattvam
grheu grha-medhinam
"Those persons who are materially engrossed, being blind to the knowl
edge of ultimate truth, have many subject matters for hearing in human
society, 0 Emperor." Those who are interested in remaining in this ma
terial world and are not interested in spiritual salvation have many
duties, but for one who is interested in spiritual salvation, the only duty
TEXTS 11-12
;J tt ;nR :q ;m I
Rr Rft'Rr "0141Rr :q II II
fi +.tf%t i'tlRr :q I
m;.rt ifi(14UOII41 tal.qf. :q II II
niimadheyani kurvanti
sthiiniini ca narii bhuvi
durgeti bhadrakiiliti
vijaya vai"{laviti ca
kumudii ca'J4ikii km:w
miidhavi kanyaketi ca
maya narayaiSani
siiradety ambiketi ca
niimadheyiini-different names; kurvanti-will give; sthiiniini-in
different places; ca-also; nard/:t-persons interested in material enjoy-
Text
12]
133
ment; bhuvi-on the surface of the globe; durgd iti-the name Durga;
bhadrakdli
va4tuzvi
Kumuda;
iti-the
iti-the
name
name
caikd-the
Bhadrakali;
Vaiavi;
vijayd-the
ca-also;
name CaJika;
name
kumudd-the
Vijaya;
name
TRANSLATION
Lord !ji;ta blessed Miyadevi by saying: In different places on
the surface of the earth, people will give you different names, such
as Durgi, Bhadrakili, Vijayi, V ai!ji;l&Vi, Kumudi, C&I;14iki, !jJ;li,
times there is rivalry between them. Essentially, those who are interested
in material enjoyment are saktas, and those interested in spiritual salva
tion and attaining the spiritual kingdom are Vai?avas. Because people
tunity to serve the Lord along with His spiritual energy. Thus Vai?avas
Srimad-Bhigavatam
134
she is auspicious, and as Kali because she is deep blue. Because she is the
most powerful energy, she is known as Vijaya; because she is one of the
different energies of Vi1,1u, she is known as Vai1,1avi; and because she
enjoys in this material world and gives facilities for material enjoyment,
she is known as Kumuda. Because she is very severe to her ene:n,.ies, the
asuras, she is known as Ca1,1Qika, and because she gives all sorts of ma
terial facilities, she is called I,lii. In this way the material energy is dif
TEXT 13
<:'
<:'
...!.-..L! ...Q.
ttlt('tf.6,Ui1((_ q : ttur
I
etf.6({Uw! ttld II II
...
rameti loka-ramar;uid
balabhadram balocchrayat
name Sailkara1,1a; bhuvi-in the world; rama iti-He will also he called
as
Sailkaruu;ta because
Text 14]
135
will be called Rima because of His ability to please all the inhabi
tants
m ijilfltRr : 1
qf{ifiwt tti ;m 1111
sand!aivam bhagavata
tathety om iti tad-vaca(L
pratigrhya parikramya
gam gata tat tathakarot
sand!a-having been ordered; evam-thus; bhagavata-by the
Supreme Personality of Godhead; tatha iti-so be it; om-affirmation by
the mantra om; iti-thus; tat-vaca(L-His words; pratigrhya-accepting
the order; parikramya-after circumambulating Him; gam-to the sur
face of the globe; gata-she immediately went; tat-the order, as given
by the Supreme Personality of Godhead; tatha-just so; akarot
executed.
TRANSLATION
Thus instrucied by the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
Yogamayi immediately agreed. With the Vedic mantra om, she
136
Srimad-Bhigavatam
as
Nanda
gokula. There she did everything just as she had been told.
PURPORT
(16.24):
chdstram pramdiJ-ilm te
kdryakdrya-vyavasthitau
jfiatva sdstra-vidhanoktam
karma kartum iharhasi
"One should understand what is duty and what is not duty by the regula
tions of the scriptures. Knowing such rules and regulations, one should
tN "i trf.\S(I I
am t6t Wr & F-g : "
garbhe pra7J.ite devakya
rohiTJ-im yoga-nidraya
aho visrarhsito garbha
iti paura vicukru5ub-
Text 15]
137
devakyii/J,-of
lost;
iti-thus;
paurii/J,-all the
(2.69):
ya ni.Sii sarva-bhutiiniim
tasyiim jagarti samyami
yasyam jagrati bhatani
sii ni.Sii pa.Syato m une/J,
"What is night for all beings is the time of awakening for the self
controlled; and the time of awakening for all beings is night for the
Srimad-Bhagavatam
138
yoga-nidra. All
llletlfq fer : I
om Dis-Xi 1r.t 3TACii: II II
bhagavan api viSvatma
bhaktanam abhayarikarab,
avivesamsa-bhagena
mana anakadundubhe bbhagavan-the Supreme Personality of Godhead; api-also; viS
Supersoul of all living entities; bhaktandm-of His
devotees; abhayam-karab,-always killing the causes of fear; dvivda
entered;
amsa bhagena-with all of His potential opulences
($ll{i-aiSvarya-pan;a); manab,-in the mind; anakadundubheb,-of
vatma-the
Vasudeva.
TRANSLATION
Thus the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is the Supersoul
of all living entities and who vanquishes all the fear of His devo
(3.2.15) as follows:
Text 17]
139
already there within the mind, and consequently it is not astonishing for
Him to appear as if born from a devotee's body. The word avivesa sig
nifies that the Lord appeared within the mind of Vasudeva. There was no
need for a discharge of semen. That is the opinion of Sripada Sridhara
within the mind of Vasudeva. Srila Viraraghava Acarya also says that
Vasudeva was one of the demigods and that within his mind the Supreme
Personality of Godhead appeared as an awakening of consciousness.
TEXT 17
i11'51itifl i I
-('""
l('tori { 11\911
durdsado 'tidurdhar$0
bhatandm sambabhava ha
TRANSLATION
While carrying the form of the Supreme Personality of Godhead
within the core of his heart, Vasudeva bore the Lord's transcen
dentally illuminating effulgence, and thus he became as bright as
the sun. He was therefore very difficult to see or approach through
sensory perception. Indeed, he was unapproachable and unper
ceivable even for such formidable men as Kaub.sa, and not only for
Kaub.sa but for all living entities.
Srimad-Bhigavatam
140
[Canto
10,
Ch. 2
PURPORT
The word dhama is significant. Dhama refers to the place where the
Sri Viraraghava Acarya says that these words refer to the effulgence of
says that these words indicate the influence of the Supreme Lord's
Gtlfli'ftoe+t"'
mJ
!film
ij'1
ti+ti!fi+tlc::+(
:u'1i!fi( :
II II
Text 18]
141
TRANSLATION
Thereafter, accompanied by plenary expansions, the fully opu
lent Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is all-auspicious for the
entire universe, was transferred from the mind of Vasudeva to the
mind of Devaki. Devaki, having thus been initiated by Vasudeva,
became beautiful by carrying Lord .Kr:Q.a, the original conscious
ness for everyone, the cause of all causes, within the core of her
heart, just as the east becomes beautiful by carrying the rising
moon.
PURPORT
the core of the heart of Devaki. We should note carefully that the Lord
was transferred to Devaki not by the ordinary way for a human being,
here. Unless one is initiated by the right person, who always carries
within his heart the Supreme Personality of Godhead, one cannot acquire
the power to carry the Supreme Godhead within the core of one's own
heart.
(5.39),
Lord is always situated with all His plenary expansions, such as Rama,
used here, signifying that the Lord is always present with His plenary
Srimad-Bhagavatam
142
within the mind. For a devotee, however, the Lord is present, and His
presence need only be awakened through initiation by a bona fide spiri
tual master. The Lord did not need to live within the womb of Devaki,
for His presence within the core of her heart was sufficient to carry Him.
One is here forbidden to think that KT1,1a was begotten by Vasudeva
within the womb of Devaki and that she carried the child within her
womb.
When Vasudeva was sustaining the form of the Supreme Personality
of Godhead within his heart, he appeared just like the glowing sun,
whose shining rays are always unbearable and scorching to the common
man. The form of the Lord situated in the pure, unalloyed heart of
Vasudeva is not different from the original form of KT1,1a. The ap
pearance of the form of KTQa anywhere, and specifically within the
heart, is called
dhama. Dhama
His name, His form, His quality and His paraphernalia. Everything be
comes manifest simultaneously.
Thus the eternal form of the Supreme Personality of Godhead with
full potencies was transferred from the mind of Vasudeva to the mind of
Devaki, exactly as the setting sun's rays are transferred to the full moon
rising in the east.
KTQa, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, entered the body of
Devaki from the body of Vasudeva. He was beyond the conditions of the
ordinary living entity. When KT1,1a is there, it is to be understood that all
His plenary expansions, such as Naraya1,1a, and incarnations like Lord
N:rsirhha and Varaha, are with Him, and they are not subject to th con
ditions of material existence. In this way, Devaki became the residence of
the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is one without a second and
the cause of all creation. Devaki became the residence of the Absolute
Truth, but because she was within the house of Karilsa, she looked just
like a suppressed fire, or like misused education. When fire is covered by
the walls of a pot or is kept in a jug, the illuminating rays of the fire can
not be very much appreciated. Similarly, misused knowledge, which does
not benefit the people in general, is not very much appreciated. So
Devaki was kept within the prison walls of Karilsa's palace, and no one
143
Text 19]
could see her transcendental beauty, which resulted from her conceiving
upon
this
verse,
Sri
Viraraghava
Acarya
writes,
Supreme Lord's entrance into the womb of Devaki from the heart of
TEXT 19
e&lf\l4m
f;mt
srlt"'N
eEtffi l;a(CI
wt
II II
sa devaki sarva-jagan-nivasa
nivasa-bhata nitaram na reje
bhojendra-gehe 'gni-sikheva ruddha
sarasvati jnana-khale yatha sati
sa devaki-that Devakidevi; sarva-jagat-nivasa-of the Supreme
knowledge but cannot distribute it; yatha-or just as; sati-so being.
TRANSLATION
Srimad-Bhagavatam
144
[Canto 10,
Ch. 2
PURPORT
In this verse the word
jfiiina-khala
Bhagavad-gitii,
other, this sublime knowledge of the science of God was not distributed
Bhagavad-gita
given in
Bhagavad-gita
and
Srimad-Bhagavatam.
In this way be
knowledge of
of distributing
it. Now, therefore, the 1.1a consciousness movement has been set up to
gitii,
Bhagavad
Bhagavad-gita as
has begun by which not only will the whole world benefit, but India's
(bhojendra-gehe),
Karhsa, with all his opulences, was later vanquished. Similarly, the real
knowledge of
Bhagavad-gita was
leaders, with the result that India's culture, and knowledge of the
Supreme were being lost. Now, however, because 1.1a consciousness is
145
Text 20]
TEXT 20
<IT
,A......
. :
31W<41ijlw:iji(T
(l;Jf ;i Mijtt{_ I
suo mrld
i(41n 1 r o"
tam viya kamsa/:t prabhayajitantaram
virocayantim bhavanam suci-smitam
ahaa me prar:ta-haro harir guham
dhruvam srito yan na pureyam idrsi
tam-her
(Devaki);
viya-after seeing;
kamsa/:t-her brother
(4.7):
Srimad-Bhigavatam
146
abhyutthanam adharmasya
tadatmanam srjamy aham
"Whenever and wherever there is a decline in religious practice, 0 de
scendant of Bharata, and a predominant rise of irreligion-at that time I
descend Myself." In this age, at the present moment, there are inordinate
discrepancies in the discharge of human duties. Human life is meant for
God realization, but unfortunately the materialistic civilization is stress
ing only the senses of the body, not understanding the living force within
the body. As clearly stated in Bhagavad-gita (dehino 'smin yatha dehe),
within the body is the body's proprietor, the living force, which is more
important. But human society has become so fallen that instead of under
standing the living force within the body, people have become busy with
external things. This is a discrepancy in human duties. Therefore .l(r![!Qa
has taken birth or taken shelter within the womb of the .l(r![!Qa conscious
ness movement. Men of Karhsa's class, therefore, are very much afraid
and are busy trying to stop this movement, especially in the Western
countries. One politician has remarked that the .l(r![!Qa consciousness
movement is spreading like an epidemic and that if not checked im
mediately, within ten years it may capture governmental power. There
is, of course, such potency in the .l(r![!Qa consciousness movement. As
over the world, and it will go on doing so. Men who are like Karhsa are
very much afraid of the movement's progress and acceptance by the
younger generation, but as K![!Qa could not be killed by Karhsa, this
movement cannot be checked by men of Karhsa's class. The movement
will go on increasing more and more, provided the leaders of the move
ment remain firmly .l(r![!Qa conscious by following the regulative prin
ciples and the primary activities of chanting the Hare .l(r![!Qa mantra
regularly.
TEXT
21
(Oftif'il
;:sft WI mfiij 'i
Text 21]
147
(qwJ
eN)sq
p;p.f (: '' ''
na
me
vihanti vikramam
adya-now, immediately;
Srimad-Bhigavatam
148
(1+q(tl
sw:a"tim<t"' 1
({ t:
'J
""
Hf61f;t""
'11 1111
sa ea jivan khalu sampareto
varteta yo 'tyanta-nrsamsitena
dehe mrte tam manuja/.t sapanti
ganta tamo 'ndham tanu-manino dhruvam
sal,t-he; ea/.t-that jealous person; jivan-while living; khalu
even; samparetal,t-is dead; varteta-continues to live; ya/.t-anyone
who; atyanta-very much; nrsamsitena-by executing cruel activities;
dehe-when the body; mrte-is finished; tam-him; manujal,t-all
human beings;
sapanti
tamal,t an
as
as
Andhatama.
PURPORT
Karilsa considered that if he killed his sister, while living he would be
condemned by everyone, and after death he would go to the darkest
Text 22]
149
region of hellish life because of his cruelty. It is said that a cruel person
like a butcher is advised not to live and not to die. While living, a cruel
person creates a hellish condition for his next birth, and therefore he
should not live; but he is also advised not to die, because after death he
in his
bodily concept, thinking, "I am this body," involves himself, by the very
tion. Such a person can do anything sinful to eat, drink, be merry and
enjoy a life of sense gratification, not knowing of the soul's transmigra
tion from one body to another. Such a person does whatever he likes,
karmiinubandha, or conditioned
by karma, and as long as the mind is absorbed in karma, one must accept
a material body. Sarira-bandha, bondage to the material body, is a source
of misery (klesa-da).
na sadhu manye yata atmano yam
asann api klesada dsa dehab-
Srimad-Bhigavatam
150
[Canto
10,
Ch. 2
tanu-mdni,
the bodily concept of life, by which one thinks, "I belong to this nation,"
"I belong to this group," "I belong to that group," and so on. Each of us
has his own ideas, and we are becoming increasingly involved, in
dividually, socially, communally and nationally, in the complexities of
ful persons, the ultimate destination is the darkest region of hellish life
"Those who are envious and mischievous, who are the lowest among
men, are cast by Me into the ocean of material existence, into various
demoniac species of life. Attaining repeated birth among the species of
demoniac life, such persons can never approach Me. Gradually they sink
down to the most abominable type of existence." A human being is
meant to understand the value of human life, which is a boon obtained
after many, many births. Therefore one must free oneself from
tanu
mdni, the bodily concept of life, and realize the Supreme Personality of
Godhead.
TEXT 23
t:it(('l(1{ fiilt: m q: 1
std\4 q l(lw-id 1111
..
Text 24]
151
iti-thus
ghora-tamiit
was needed.
TEXT 24
3TRft;r: ('{jgW{ : I
P-:.::::mui iJijqqd\ 110{11
iisina(t samviSarils tthan
bhufijana(t paryatan mahim
cintayano hr$ikesam
apa.Syat tanmayam jagat
eating;
paryatan-while
walking
or
moving;
152
Srimad-Bhagavatam
TRANSLATION
While sitting on his throne or in his sitting room, while lying on
his bed, or, indeed, while situated anywhere, and while eating,
fig.
Text 25]
stated in
153
studying the nature of the living entity one can understand the nature of
the Supreme Godhead, since the living entity is a fragmental sample of
the Godhead. But because atheists are not interested in God conscious
world is full of problems, whereas for a devotee the entire world is full of
happiness.
TEXT 25
;mT
:1
: : ftffliEIIJla:StWJ: II
Srimad-Bhagavatam
154
sages;
narada-adibhi/:t-by
Narada
and
others;
devai/:t-and
by
followers;
sakam-all
together;
PURPORT
ways jubilant in chanting the holy name of the Lord. And what to speak
of Narada?
Muni is always chanting the glories of the Lord, and his engagement is to
travel all over the universe and find a devotee or make someone a devo
tee. Even a hunter was made a devotee by the grace of Narada. Srila
Text 26]
155
means that Narada and the demigods were accompanied by other saintly
persons, like Sanaka and Sanatana, all of whom came to congratulate or
welcome the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Even though Kamsa was
planning to kill Devaki, he too awaited the arrival of the Supreme Per
sonality of Godhead
(pratiams taj-janma).
TEXT 26
.
,.,.
'ft"llt4r.:i-6
ft"!!if
ij
iji(
ij\44fl6ijifsi
s= "'
..:s: : II
satyasya-of
satye-in
yonim-the
cause; nihitam-en
stham (Brahma-sarhhitd
Srimad-Bhigavatam
156
surrender;
protection.
TRANSLATION
The demigods prayed: 0 Lord, You never deviate from Your
man ifestation-creation,
maintenance
all time. You are the beginning of all truth. Therefore, offering
om
namo
the demigods, and their fruits are limited and temporary:" Worship of
demigods may be useful for a limited time, but the result is
antavat,
Text 26]
157
cetandnam). Every living entity, therefore, must search for eternal hap
satyam param dhimahi in
dicate that one should search for the Absolute Truth, not the relative
truth.
While offering prayers to the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
N:rsirilhadeva, Prahlada Maharaja said:
158
Srimad-Bhigavatam
[Canto
10,
Ch. 2
peared in the womb of His devotee Devaki to protect all the devotees
harassed by Karilsa and his lieutenants. Thus the Lord acts as satya
vrata. The protection given by the Supreme Personality of Godhead can
went to kill him, Lord Siva could not give him protection.
Lord Brahma and Lord Siva, accompanied by great sages like Narada
and followed by many other demigods, had now invisibly appeared in the
house of Karilsa. They began to pray for the Supreme Personality of God
head in select prayers which are very pleasing to the devotees and which
award fulfillment of devotional desires. The first words they spoke ac
claimed that the Lord is true to His vow. As stated in the Bhagavad-gita,
Kr1,1a descends upon this material world just to protect the pious and
destroy the impious. That is His vow. The demigods could understand
that the Lord had taken His residence within the womb of Devaki to
fulfill this vow. They were very glad that the Lord was appearing to
fulfill His mission, and they addressed Him as satyam param, or the
Supreme Absolute Truth.
life. The demigods give information that the Supreme Absolute Truth is
Kr1,1a. One who becomes fully Kr1,1a conscious can attain the Absolute
Truth. Kr1,1a is the Absolute Truth. Relative truth is not truth in all the
three phases of eternal time. Time is divided into past, present and
future. Kr1,1a is Truth always, past, present and future. In the material
past, present and future. But before the creation, Kr1,1a was existing,
and when there is creation, everything is resting in Kr1,1a, and when this
within this material world, the cause of the opulence is Kr1,1a. If there is
any reputation within this material world, the cause of the reputation is
Kr1,1a. If there is any strength within this material world, the cause of
such strength is KrJ,la. If there is any wisdom and education within this
material world, the cause of such wisdom and education is Kr1,1a.
Text 26]
159
jnana-bala-kriya
activity. In every field, if there is not full knowledge, full strength and
full activity, an endeavor is never successful. Therefore, if one wants
success in everything, one must he hacked by these three principles. In
the
(svabhdviki
the Lord are not meant to struggle for existence. The devotees who are
fully engaged in spreading the .KrJ.la consciousness movement, more
than ten thousand men and women all over the world, have no steady or
permanent occupation, yet we actually see that they are .maintained very
opulently. The Lord says in
Bhagavad-gitd (9.22):
Srimad-Bhigavatam
160
[Canto
9.31)
10,
Ch. 2
From all
meaningful:
Thakura says that K{;ta is the avatiiri, the origin of all incarnations. All
many lamps, all equal in power, yet there is a first lamp, a second lamp, a
third lamp and so on. Similarly, there are many incarnations, who are
compared to lamps, but the first lamp, the original Personality of God
sonality of Godhead, but one might argue that since the Supreme God
head was within the womb of Devaki, He was also coming in a material
body. Why then should He be worshiped? Why should one make a dis
TEXT 27
:LUI
2Jsm
i:t6et-
qifft:
Text 27]
161
aI!Fclatil
:sxa
..
the root of a tree extracts water (rasa) from the earth, the body tastes dharma,
artha, kama and moa-religion, economic development, sense gratification and libera
tion. These are four kinds of rasa, or taste.
Srimad-Bhiigavatam
162
lusion, old age, death, hunger and thirst. The seven layers of bark
covering the tree are skin, blood, muscle, fat, bone, marrow and
semen, and the eight branches of the tree are the five gross and
gence and false ego. The tree of the body has nine hollows-the
eyes, the ears, the nostrils, the mouth, the rectum and the
genitals-and ten leaves, the ten airs passing through the body. In
this tree of the body there are two birds: one is the individual soul,
PURPORT
This material world is composed of five principal elements-earth,
water, fire, air and ether-all of which are emanations from a. Al
though materialistic scientists may accept these five primary elements as
the cause of the material manifestation, these elements in their gross and
subtle states are produced by a, whose marginal potency also pro
duces the living entities working within this material world. The Seventh
Chapter of
Bhagavad-gitt'i (7.5)
Text
27]
163
body there are two birds, or two living elements, and they are always dif
ferent. In
The individual soul is the owner of his individual body, but the Super
soul is present within the bodies of all living entities. Such a thorough
analysis and understanding of the bodily structure cannot be obtained
anywhere but in the Vedic literature.
When two birds enter a tree, one may foolishly think that the birds be
come one or merge with the tree, but actually they do not. Rather, each
bird keeps its individual identity. Similarly, the individual soul and the
Supersoul do not become one, nor do they merge with matter. The living
entity lives close to matter, but this does not mean that he merges or
mixes with it
(dvi-khaga):
body
in his own
Srimad-Bhigavatam
164
TEXT 28
'4( I
.
qp:p.u
ijtfttt('tT
;n;t'T WI mf lJ II
q :
..
(0
tvam-Your Lordship;
san
TRANSLATION
The efficient cause of this material world, manifested with its
many varieties
as
Various demigods, beginning from Lord Brahmii, Lord Siva and even
material world, but actually they are not. The fact is that everything is
the Supreme Personality of Godhead, manifested in varieties of energy.
Text 28]
truly
165
Premafijana-cchurita-bhakti-vilocanena santa/:f,
sadaiva hrdayeu vilokayanti (Brahma-samhitd 5.38). Learned devotees
Tat te 'nukampdm
susamiamar;w/:l (Bhdg. 10.14.8). A devotee, therefore, regards distress
cleansed of contamination.
tended to give the devotee relief from this material world, which is called
surrendered soul from repeated birth and death, the Lord purifies him of
contamination by offering him a little distress. This cannot be understood
vipacit, or
Persons who are not in real knowledge think that Brahma is the cre
ator, Vi1,1u the maintainer and Siva the annihilator and that the different
fulfilled
devotee, however, knows that these various demigods are but different
parts of the Supreme Personality of Godhead and that these parts need
Bhagavad-gitd (9.23):
166
Srimad-Bhigavatam
Text 30]
167
TRANSLATION
0 Lord, You are always in full knowledge, and to bring all good
fortune to all living entities, You appear in different incarnations,
all of them transcendental to the material creation. When You ap
pear in these incarnations, You are pleasing to the pious and
religious devotees, but for nondevotees You are the annihilator.
PURPORT
This verse explains why the Supreme Personality of Godhead appears
as an incarnation again and again. The incarnations of the Supreme Per
sonality of Godhead all function differently, but their main purpose is
miscreants.
or
ul"i'lllaJIRccH+?.ITfl;:r
ro11ij%;
d
qJq
iftq lloll
11:0
tvayy ambujaakhila-sattva-dhamni
samadhinavesita-cetasaike
tvat-pada-potena mahat-krtena
kurvanti govatsa-padam bhavabdhim
tvayl-m You; ambhuja-aa-0 lotus-eyed Lord; akhila-sattva
dhamni-who are the original cause of all existence, from whom every
thing emanates and in whom all potencies reside; samadhina-by
constant meditation and complete absorption
Supreme
Personality
of
Godhead) ;
( in
ave5ita-fully
absorbed,
fully
168
Srimad-Bhagavatam
[Canto I 0, Ch. 2
lotus feet, which are the reservoir of all existence, and by accept
ing those lotus feet as the boat by which to cross the ocean of ne
sages and devotees]. By this simple process, one can cross the
PURPORT
The true mission in life is to cross the ocean of nescience, of repeated
know this mission. Instead, being carried away by the waves of material
nature
and death. But persons who have achieved knowledge by the association
concentrates his mind upon the lotus feet of the Lord and executes one or
(sravanam kirtanam
v/:l smara7J.aril pada-sevanam). Simply by this process, one can cross
Sri-v/:l sravar:te
pariid abhavad vaiyasaki/:l kirtane (Bhakti-rasamrta-sindhu 1.2.265).
centrating his mind on hearing the Lord's holy name, attributes and
simply by
devotional service, as we learn from the examples set by the Lord's many
pure devotees.
Text 30]
169
eyes of the Lord, which are compared to lotus flowers, one becomes so
satisfied that one does not want to turn his eyes to anything else. Simply
by seeing the transcendental form of the Lord, a devotee is at once
fully absorbed in the Lord in his heart. This absorption is called
samasrita ye pada-pallava-plavam
mahat-padam pu1Jya-ya5o murareb,
bhavambudhir vatsa-padam param padam
padam padam yad vipadam na team
"For one who has accepted the boat of the lotus feet of the Lord, who is
the shelter of the cosmic manifestation and is famous as Murari, the
enemy of the demon Mura, the ocean of the material world is like the
water contained in a calf's hoofprint. His goal is
param padam, or
Vaikui.J.tha, the place where there are no material miseries, not the place
where there is danger at every step."
Siva
Srimad-Bhagavatam
170
process shown by great devotees is not only for them but also for others.
If things are made easy, this affords facility for the person who has made
them easy and also for others who follow the same principles. The pro
cess recommended in this verse for crossing the ocean of nescience is
easy not only for the devotee but also for common persons who follow the
devotee (mahajano yena gata sa panthaM.
TEXT 31
Ft
+fiqqmoo: '
"'
: w.::!J:ifit II II
....
'4'""'
a;
q.. l ..
nidhaya-leaving behind;
te-they
(the
VaiI).avas ) ;
0 Lord, who resemble the shining sun, You are always ready to
fulfill the desire of You'r devotee, and therefore You are known as
a desire tree [viiichi-kalpataru]. When iciryas completely take
shelter under Your lotus feet in order to cross the fierce ocean of
Text 31]
171
cross, and because You are very merciful to Your other devotees,
You accept this method to help them.
PURPORT
This statement reveals how the merciful acdryas and the merciful
One can achieve the seed of bhakti-latd, devotional service, by the mercy
of guru and K:rIJa. The duty of the guru is to find the means, according
to the time, the circumstances and the candidate, by which one can be in
duced to render devotional service, which KniJa accepts from a candi
material world seeks shelter of such a guru, or acarya, who trains the
the acarya to publish books that will help future candidates take up the
same path is being prescribed and followed. Thus the devotees have been
ing is not possible, one should not artificially imitate Haridasa Thakura,
but should follow this method. K:rIJa will accept a devotee who strictly
Srimad-Bhigavatam
172
[Canto
10,
Ch. 2
acarya
gives the suitable method for crossing the ocean of nescience by accept
ing the boat of the Lord's lotus feet, and if this method is strictly
followed, the followers will ultimately reach the destination, by the grace
acarya-sampradaya. It is there
sampradaya-vihina ye mantras te nphala mata/:l (Padma
Pura1J-(l). The acarya-sampradaya is strictly bona :fide. Therefore one
must accept the acarya-sampradaya; otherwise one's endeavor will be
fore said,
TEXT 32
ifs;iJsd;=a:tij
F.?in:z:mD!l-
,tIG\f?l:t!:
'"'
1111
ye 'nye 'ravindaa vimukta-maninas
tvayy asta-bhavad avi.Suddha-buddhaya/:1.
aruhya krcchre1J-ll param padam tata/:l
patanty adho 'nadrta-ymad-arighraya/:1.
ye anye-anyone, or all others; aravinda-aa-0 lotus-eyed one;
vimukta - manina/:1.- falsely considering themselves free from the bond
age of material contamination; tvayi-unto You; asta-bhdvdt-specu
Text 32]
173
(according
to their
(9.3):
araddadhiinii puii
dharmasyiisya parantapa
aprapya miim nivartante
mrtyu-samsiira-vartmani
"Those who are not faithful on the path of devotional service cannot at
tain Me, 0 conqueror of foes, but return to birth and death in this ma
terial world." It doesn't matter whether one is a karmi, jnani, yogi,
philanthropist, politician or whatever; if one has no love for the lotus
Srimad-Bhigavatam
174
[Canto
10,
Ch. 2
feet of the Lord, one falls down. That is the verdict given by Lord
Brahma in this verse.
There are persons who advocate accepting any process and who say
that whatever process one accepts will lead to the same goal, but that is
refuted in this verse, where such persons are referred to as
vimukta
maninab,, signifying that although they think they have attained the
highest perfection, in fact they have not. In the present day, big, big
politicians all over the world think that by scheming they can occupy the
highest political post, that of president or prime minister, but we actually
see that even in this life such big prime ministers, presidents and other
politicians, because of being nondevotees, fall down
(patanty adhab,). To
become president or prime minister is not easy; one must work very hard
(aruhya krcchrer:w) to achieve the post. And even though one may reach
his goal, at any moment one may be kicked down by material nature. In
human society there have been many instances in which great, exalted
politicians have fallen from government and become lost in historical
oblivion. The cause of this is
is impure. The
sastra says,
11
devo
Text 32]
175
6.22).
is fully satisfied and does not need to ask for any material benediction.
At night, no one can see a lotus, for lotuses blossom only during the
is in darkness, exactly like one who cannot see a lotus. One who has not
come to the point of seeing the lotus eyes and transcendental form of
Syamasundara is a failure. Premdfijana-cchurita-bhakti-vilocanena san
tab, sadaiva hrdaye$U vilokayanti. Those who are attached to the
Supreme Personality of Godhead in love always see the Lord's lotus eyes
and lotus feet, whereas others cannot see the Lord's beauty and are
Lord's personal form. Those who neglect the Lord's form are surely
failures on every path in life, but if one develops even a little love for the
(9.34),
home, back to Godhead, and thus attain the highest perfection. The Lord
further affirms in Bhagavad-gita
(18.54-55):
brahma-bhatab, prasanndtmd
na socati na kdnati
samab, sarve$U bhate$U
mad-bhaktim labhate pardm
bhaktya mdm abhijandti
ydvdn ya cdsmi tattvatab,
tato mdm tattvato jfidtvd
viSate tad-anantaram
Srimad-Bhigavatam
176
lW:l;r nm:
;cHI tllt'Eiffi4 iltmr:
1
"'
fall from the path of devotion, they do not fall like nondevotees,
for You still protect them. Thus they fearlessly traverse the heads
of their opponents and continue to progress in devotional service.
Text 33]
177
PURPORT
Devotees generally do not fall down, but if circumstantially they do,
the Lord, because of their strong attachment to Him, gives them protec
tion in all circumstances. Thus even if devotees fall down, they are still
strong enough to traverse the heads of their enemies. We have actually
seen that our l(rQ.a consciousness movement has many opponents, such
as the "deprogrammers," who instituted a strong legal case against the
devotees. We thought that this case would take a long time to settle, but
because the devotees were protected by the Supreme Personality of God
head, we unexpectedly won the case in one day. Thus a case that was ex
pected to continue for years was settled in a day because of the protection
Bhagavad
gita (9.31), kaunteya pratijanihi na me bhakta/:t praT)llyati: "0 son of
head, however, the deer remembered his relationship with the Lord and
next took birth in a good brahminical family and performed devotional
service
Citraketu fell down and became a demon, V:rtrasura, but he too was pro
tected. Thus even if one falls down from the path of
bhakti-yoga, one is
(kaun
bhakta/:t praT)llyati). But even if a devotee
teya pratijanihi na
me
Srimad-Bhigavatam
178
[Canto
10,
Ch. 2
18.78)
i ffl
ftutt
W-mJq;f
q: I
iii!\iifiPltmfq:ij"+tlll:iiW
:::-.. "
"'
S:
LJ_,.m
..
..
..
iR : r ll'dll
Text 34]
179
activities
such
as
ritualistic
ceremonies,
mystic
yoga,
Lord
Srimad
Bhagavatam as the activities of go-khara, cows and asses (sa eva go
kharab,). Everyone is acting in a bodily concept of life involving society,
The modern activities of human society are described in
friendship and love for the improvement of economic and political condi
tions, and thus all activites are enacted in ignorance. The Supreme
180
Srimad-Bhagavatam
[Canto
10,
Ch. 2
peared as Sri Caitanya Mahaprabhu and preached that in this age the
"In this age of quarrel and hypocrisy the only means of deliverance is
chanting the holy name of the Lord. There is no other way. There is no
other way. There is no other way." The KtQ.a consciousness movement
is therefore teaching people all over the world how to chant the Hare
KtQ.a mantra, and this has proved very much effective in all places at all
body like ours, for KtQ.a and Caitanya Mahaprabhu appeared as needed
for the benefit of the entire human society. Out of causeless mercy, the
Lord appears in different ages in His original suddha-sattva transcen
tially such activities are the activities of animals (sa eva go-kharab,}. We
for human understanding. Thus we can become happy even in this age of
Kali.
TEXT 35
;f WI .ldR Fr +{
C'
"
"
lql'ilMWf
Text 35]
I iiiiiU
Iu
..
III:,
181
l'f.rT'l.
tiT !I'll! II '-\II
tal
knowledge;
lJ.ll-quality or intelligence.
TRANSLATION
Srimad-Bhiigavatam (10.14.29):
Srimad-Bhigavatam
182
cdsmi tattvatafl
(Bg.
18.55).
nature in the presence of the Lord and who follow the rules and regula
tions of devotional service can understand Lord K:rr,a, Lord Ramacandra
and other incarnations, who are not of this material world but who come
from the spiritual world for the benefit of people in general. If one does
not take to this process, one imagines or manufactures some form of God
according to material qualities and can never awaken a real understand
ing of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. The words
bhaktya mdm
Brahma-samhita it
Brahma-samhita,
oldest of all living entities, He has His eternal form as a fresh youth.
Srimad-Bhagavatam
vijnanam ajnana-bhidlipamarjanam. Vijnana means transcendental
knowledge of the Supreme Personality; vijfidna is also experienced
The exact words used in this connection in the
are
Brahma-samhitd. Brahma-samhita
is
vijfiana
as
Text 35]
183
ignorance, people are imagining the form of the Lord; sometimes He has
accepted by Lord Caitanya. There is no doubt about it. Sri _Kr1,1a's form,
Sri _Kr1,1a's flute, K:r1,1a's color-everything is reality. Here it is said that
terial nature imagine their own God according to the modes of material
"Dear Lord," the demigods prayed, "when You appear in Your dif
beauty. Syama means blackish, yet they say that You are more beautiful
pear in a color which is compared to that of a blackish cloud, You are the
184
Srimad-Bhigavatam
[Canto
10,
Ch. 2
more attractive than the delicate body of Cupid. Sometimes You are
called Giridhari because You lifted the hill known as Govardhana. You
cording to a particular type of work and quality because they accept You
solute nature and Your transcendental form, name and quality. Actually,
only a person who has a little taste for the service of Your lotus feet can
and everyone." When K{1,1a came, He was actually present on the bat
tlefield of Kuruketra, and everyone saw Him. But not everyone could
miUJ,has do not
BhagavataJ!l.
Text 36]
185
TEXT 36
;r
"
"'
na nama-rape gur;ta-janma-karmabhir
nirapitavye tava tasya sak$ir;ta
mano-vacobhyam anumeya-vartmano
deva kriyayam pratiyanty athapi hi
na-not; nama-rape-the name and form; gur;ta-with attributes;
can
devotional service.
PURPORT
As stated in the Padma PurdJ:ta:
ata sri-krr;ta-niirniidi
na bhaved grahyam indriyai
sevonmukhe hi jihvadau
186
Srimad-Bhagavatam
[Canto
l 0,
Ch.
ada}.:
K{Qa's
(18.55):
tees, cannot understand that Your name is identical with Your form."
Since the Lord is absolute, there is no difference between His name and
His actual form. In the material world there is a difference between form
and name. The mango fruit is different from the name of the mango.
One cannot taste the mango fruit simply by chanting, "Mango, mango,
mango." But the devotee who knows that there is no difference between
the name and the form of the Lord chants Hare K{Qa, Hare K{Qa,
K{Qa K{Qa, Hare Hare/ Hare Rama, Hare Rama, Rama Rama, Hare
Hare, and realizes that he is always in K{Qa's company.
For persons who are not very advanced in absolute knowledge of the
Text
36]
187
simply think of the pastimes of the Lord and get the full benefit. Since
there is no difference between the transcendental name and form of the
form of the Lord. For those who are less intelligent (like women, laborers
or the mercantile class), the great sage Vyasadeva wrote Mahabharata.
ing the transcendental activities of .KrI].a, the less intelligent can also
gradually rise to the standard of pure devotees.
The pure devotees, who are always absorbed in the thought of the
transcendental lotus feet of .Krl}.a and who are always engaged in devo
be in the material world. Srila Riipa Gosviimi has explained that those
who are always engaged in .Krl}.a consciousness by body, mind and ac
tivities are to be considered liberated even within this body. This is also
confirmed in the Bhagavad-gita: those who are engaged in the devo
tional service of the Lord have already transcended the material position.
.Krf?l}.a appears in order to give a chance to both the devotees and the
nondevotees for realization of the ultimate goal of life. The devotees get
the direct chance to see Him and worship Him. Those who are not on that
platform get the chance to become acquainted with His activities and
(5.38)
says:
premdiijana-cchurita-bhakti-vilocanena
santa sadaiva hrdaye$u vilokayanti
yam syamasundaram acintya-gur;w-svarapam
govindam adi-purU$arh tam aham bhajami
Although .KrI].a's transcendental form is presented as black, devotees
who are in love with the Supreme Personality of Godhead appreciate the
Lord as Syamasundara, having a very beautiful blackish form. The
Lord's form is so beautiful that the Brahma-samhita
(5.30)
also states:
Srimad-Bhigavatam
188
(Canto
10,
Ch. 2
kandarpa-kofi-kamaniya-viSea-sobham
govindam tidi-puram tam aham bhajami
"I worship Govinda, the primeval Lord, who plays on His transcendental
flute. His eyes are like lotus flowers, He is decorated with peacock
plumes, and His bodily color resembles the color of a fresh black cloud,
are in love with Him, devotees whose eyes are anointed with love of God
head (premaiijana-cchurita-bhakti-vilocanena).
for the sake of His devotees, lifted Govardhana Hill, the devotees ap
can
The history of l(r1,1a the person has been openly seen by everyone, yet
only those who are in love with the Supreme Personality of Godhead can
their loving qualities, think that the activities, form and attributes of the
plains,
na
given the example that persons suffering from jaundice cannot taste the
sweetness of sugar candy, although everyone knows that sugar candy is
sweet. Similarly, because of the material disease, nondevotees cannot
Text 37]
189
bhakti
yoga, one cannot understand the Supreme Personality of Godhead or His
gita (4.9):
Bhagavad
TEXT 37
R
ift fll...:.
_..
lif :q
omR,.....
,.....
"
......
"
.._
2111-iKI-lSt
if
+f.lp.:(
:::.
'1
\911
Srimad-Bhigavatam
190
names;
ca-also; marigaliini
which are all transcendental and therefore auspicious; te-of Your Lord
na-not;
TRANSLATION
Even while engaged in various activities, devotees whose minds
can
PURPORT
How bhakti-yoga can be practiced is explained in this verse. Srila
Rupa Gosvami has said that anyone who has dedicated his life to the ser
vice of the Lord (ihii yasya harer diisye) by his activities, his mind and
his words (karma manasii gira) may stay in any condition of life
materially embodied.
(Bhiig. 6.17.28)
Text
tad
191
37]
the supreme will of the Lord, takes birth in this material world, he con
tinues his devotional service. When King Bharata made a mistake and in
his next life became a deer, his devotional service did not stop, although
Narada Muni says that even if one falls from the platform of devotional
service, he is not lost, whereas nondevotees are lost entirely because they
are not engaged in service.
that
one
always
mahd-mantra:
engage
least
in
chanting
the
Hare
K.r:Q.a
bowing down before Me, the great souls perpetually worship Me with
devotion."
One should not give up the process of devotional service, which is per
Padma Pur:d:
avava-mukhodgim
pataril hari-kathdmrtam
sravam naiva kartavyam
sarpocch!aril yathd paya/:t
We should strictly follow this injunction and never try to hear from
Mayavadis, impersonalists, voidists, politicians or so-called scholars.
192
Srimad-Bhigavatam
[Canto
10,
Ch. 2
s : ttG:T i;it
mifsq1d
IJfritRla:
t"-uft6i qf:\*: P
;rim6'4tfif'l:q61iJ "
di!yd hare 'sya bhavatal;t pado bhuvo
bharo 'panitas tava janmanesitul;t
di!yarikitaril tvat-padakail;t su5obhanair
drayama gam dyaril ca tavanukampitam
di!ya-by fortune; hare-0 Lord; asyal;t-of this (world);
bhavatal;t-of Your Lordship; padal;t-of the place; bhuval;t-on this
earth; bharal;t-the burden created by the demons; apanital;t-now
Text 38]
193
ankitam-marked;
tvat-padakai-by
Your
lotus
feet;
TRANSLATION
0 Lord, we are fortunate because the heavy burden of the
demons upon this earth is immediately removed by Your ap
pearance. Indeed, we are certainly fortunate, for we shall be able
to see upon this earth and in the heavenly planets the marks of
lotus, conchshell, club and disc that adorn Your lotus feet.
PURPORT
The soles of the Lord's lotus feet are marked with sankha-cakra
gada-padma-conchshell, disc, club and lotus-and also by a flag and a
thunderbolt. When K:r1,1a walks on this earth or in the heavenly planets,
these marks are visible wherever He goes. V:rndavana-dhama is a tran
scendental place because of K:r1,1a's walking on this land frequently. The
inhabitants of V:rndavana were fortunate to see these marks here and
there. When Akn1ra went to V:rndavana to take K:r1,1a and Balarama
away to the festival arranged by Kamsa, upon seeing the marks of the
Lord's lotus feet on the ground of V:rndavana, he fell down and began to
groan. These marks are visible to devotees who receive the causeless
mercy of the Supreme Personality of Godhead (tavdnukampitam). The
demigods were jubilant not only because the appearance of the Supreme
Lord would do away with the burdensome demons, but also because they
would be able to see upon the ground the transcendental marks from the
soles of the Lord's lotus feet. The gopis always thought of the Lord's lotus
feet when He was walking in the pasturing grounds, and, as described in
the previous verse, simply by thinking of the Lord's lotus feet, the gopis
were fully absorbed in transcendence (avta-cetd na bhavaya kalpate).
Like the gopis, one who is always absorbed in thought of the Lord is
Srimad-Bhagavatam
194
beyond the material platform and will not remain in this material world.
It is our duty, therefore, always to hear, chant and think about the Lord's
lotus feet, as actually done by Vai1,1avas who have decided to live in
V:rndavana always and think of the Lord's lotus feet twenty-four hours a
day.
TEXT 39
Sl4'4]
iRI ijl'l' I
WN: W:tRttttfcl'4tl
11'<.11
bata-however;
who are part of You, have no cause for miseries like birth, death
Text 39]
195
and old age, except when these living entities are conducted by
Your external energy.
PURPORT
As stated in Bhagavad-gita
(15.7),
sanatana/:t: the living entities are parts and parcels of the Supreme Lord,
and thus they are qualitatively one with the Lord. We can unde:r:stand
that when the Supreme Lord appears or disappears as an incarnation,
there is no other cause than His pleasure potency. We cannot force the
Supreme Personality of Godhead to appear. As He says in Bhagavad-gita
(4.7):
yada yada hi dharmasya
glanir bhavati bharata
abhyutthanam adharmasya
tadatmanam srjamy aham
"Whenever and wherever there is a decline in religious practice, 0 de
scendant of Bharata, and a predominant rise of irreligion-at that time I
descend Myself." When there is a need to diminish a burden created by
the demons, the Supreme Godhead can do it in many ways because He
has multifarious energies. There is no need for Him to come as an incar
nation, since He is not forced to do anything like ordinary living entities.
The living entities come to this material world in the spirit of enjoyment,
but because they want to enjoy without a (kmw-bahirmukha haiya
bhoja-vaftcha kare), they suffer birth, death, old age and disease under
the control of the illusory energy. When the Supreme Personality of
Godhead appears, however, no such causes are involved; His descent is
an act of His pleasure potency. We should always remember this distinc
tion between the Lord and the ordinary living entity and not uselessly
argue that the Lord cannot come. There are philosophers who do not
believe in the Lord's incarnation and who ask, "Why should the
Supreme Lord come?" But the answer is, "Why should He not come?
Why should He be controlled by the desire of the living entity?" The
Lord is free to do whatever He likes. Therefore this verse says, vind
Srimad-Bhigavatam
196
[Canto
l 0,
Ch. 2
When the living entities come to this world for material enjoyment,
they are entangled in karma and karma-phala by the Lord's illusory en
ergy. But if one seeks shelter at the Lord's lotus feet, one is again situ
ated in his original, liberated state. As stated here, krta yatas tvayy
abhayasrayatmani: one who seeks shelter at the lotus feet of the Lord is
always fearless. Because we are dependent on the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, we should give up the idea that without Kr1;1a we can enjoy
freedom in this material world. This idea is the reason we have become
entangled. Now it is our duty to seek shelter again at the Lord's lotus
feet. This shelter is described as abhaya, or fearless. Since Kr1;1a is not
subject to birth, death, old age or disease, and since we are part and
parcel of K:r1;1a, we also are not subject to birth, death, old age and dis
ease, but we have become subject to these illusory problems because of
our forgetfulness of Kr1;1a and our position as His eternal servants
'd4Nqifij(CI(I(
(I'llt44f4$1HM :
qtf:q
R wiT ((
I
11\Joll
matsyasva-kacchapa-nrsirhha-varaha-hamsa
rajanya-vipra-vibudheu krtavatarab,
tvarh piisi
nas
tri-bhuvanarh ca yathadhunesa
Text 41]
197
ft:t'tlt"'' ij : ':
wt:l
l(lq(Uj4{ff -
6tlil:
mH II
mam
Srimad-Bhagavatam
198
your son.
TRANSLATION
0 mother Devak.i, by your good fortune and ours, the Supreme
not fear Kamsa, who has decided to be killed by the Lord. Your
PURPORT
{'tt tJ(q4Pl I
:r.;J,. : stRI:qgfc{aJ
..
Text
42]
199
sri-suka uvdca
ity abhtuya puam
yad-rupam anidam yatha
brahmesiinau purodhaya
devii/:l pratiyayur divam
sri-suka/:l uvaca-Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said; iti-in this way;
abhtuya-offering prayers;
them
in
front;
devii/:l-all
the demigods;
pratiyayu/:-returned;
TRANSLATION
After thus offering prayers to the Supreme Personality of God
head, Lord Viu, the Transcendence, all the demigods, with Lord
Brahmii and Lord Siva before them, returned to their homes in the
heavenly planets.
PURPORT
It is said:
Lord's incarnations, but they can be perceived only by devotees who are
fortunate. The devatiis, the demigods, fortunately understood the incar
tary. Since it was said at first that 1,1a was present within the heart of
Vasudeva and was transfered to the heart of Devaki, Sri Jiva Gosvami
writes, how is it that )a was now in the womb? He replies that there
200
Srimad-Bhigavatam
(Canto
10,
Ch. 2
is no contradiction. From the heart the Lord can go to the womb, or from
the womb He can go to the heart. Indeed, He can go or stay anywhere. As
confirmed in the Brahma-sarilhita
(5.35),
ar:u;lantara-stha-paramdr:w
CHAPTER THREE
(ar:u;ldntara-stha-paramar:r-u-cayantara
stham), yet He is transcendentally situated. For the creation, mainte
Paramatma, He is all-pervading
nance and annihilation of this material world, the Lord appears as the
Srimad-Bhigavatam
202
this very time, Yogamaya took birth as the daughter of Yasoda. By the ar
rangement of Yogamaya, Vasudeva was able to leave the prison house
and save the child from the hands of Karhsa. When Vasudeva brought
K.r!?a to the house of Nanda Maharaja, he saw that by Yogamaya's ar
rangement, Yasoda, as well as everyone else, was deeply asleep. Thus he
exchanged the babies, taking Yogamaya from Yasoda's lap and placing
K.r?a there instead. Then Vasudeva returned to his own place, having
taken Yogamaya as his daughter. He placed Yogamaya on Devaki's bed
and prepared to be a prisoner as before. In Gokula, Yasoda could not
understand whether she had given birth to a male or a female child.
TEXTS 1-5
31
ijgoii<Ht :
: I
('
m-aJWii II Z
Til(UII
,...,c- ...
"' '( I
Cfil':
liitiif ..'iaJ
It
"
;rQ:
illil
C'
.
II
II II
3Rf<iiij ro : 1
" (?;ij
. IC::M'41
'4ilU:ttf: II II
T : ij(ct : {: : I
31Wt f(.:itlffiili II II
.
+tllWI. st;;fll"i ijfrll'iij(g){l'( I
"""
"'
"
Gtl+tF1
: II '-\ II
"
"'
sri-suka uvaca
atha saroa-gul)Opeta
kala parama-5obhana
yarhy evajana-janmaram
santar-graha-tiirakam
di.Sa prasedur gaganam
nirmalo(J,u-gaT)Odayam
Text
5]
203
J}.a
mahi marigala-bhaytha
pura-grama-vrajakara
nadyab, prasanna-salilii
hrada jalaruha-sriyab,
dvijali-kula-sannada
stavaka vana-rajayab,
vavau vayub, sukha-sparsab,
pur;tya-gandhavahab, sucib,
agnaya ca dvijatindrh
santds tatra samindhata
manarhsy dsan prasannani
sadhanam asura-druham
jayamane 'jane tasmin
nedur dundubhayab, samam
sri-sukab, uvac a-Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said; atha-on the occasion
diSab,-all directions;
prasedub,-appeared very
ble (in the upper strata of the universe); mahi-the earth; mangala
turing grounds and mines became auspicious and very neat and clean;
nadyab,-the
rivers;
prasanna-saliliib,-the
waters
became
clear;
Srimad-Bhigavatam
204
Lord, the entire universe was surcharged with all the qualities of
did stars like Asvini. The sun, the moon and the other stars and
planets were very peaceful. All directions appeared extremely
pleasing, and the beautiful stars twinkled in the cloudless sky.
and the lakes and vast reservoirs, full of lilies and lotuses, were ex
flowers and leaves, pleasing to the eyes, birds like cuckoos and
swarms of bees began chanting with sweet voices for the sake of
touch and bearing the aroma of flowers, and when the brihmas
breeze. Thus when the birthless Lord V i!1J].U, the Supreme Per
sonality
of
Godhead,
was
about
to
appear,
the
saints
and
Text 5]
205
and his men, felt peace within the core of their hearts, and ket
tledrums
simultaneously
vibrated
from
the
upper
planetary
system.
PURPORT
tunity to start the fire peacefully. Being forbidden to o!fer sacrifices, the
[Canto
Srimad-Bhagavatam
206
10,
Ch. 3
to perform
their
daily
ritualistic
"
\'
..
Jq
"
1(1HUU: I
;rtl<tftil: it' II II
jagu/:1. kinnara-gandharoiis
tuvu/:1.
siddha-ciiraTJ-ii/:1.
vidyiidharya ca nanrtur
207
Text 8]
..,
.....
. ,......_
,......
01.11
....
<:flf\3'
....
,......
\Jtlt41'1
,......._
rqu;;rr "!!:
I
C'
r.a:
3ltTfter: II<: II
mumucur munayo devab,
sumanamsi mudanvitab,
mandam mandam jaladhara
jagarjur anusagaram
niSithe tama-udbhute
jayamane janardane
devakyam deva-rupir;tyam
vr;tub, sarva-guha-sayab,
avirasid yatha pracyam
diSindur iva pkalab,
mumucub,-showered ; munayab,-all the great sages and saintly per
sons;
fragrant flowers;
mudd
208
Srimad-Bhagavatam
(ananda-cinmaya-rasa-pratibhavitabhiM;
vub.-Lord
avirasit-appeared;
yatha-as;
diSi-in the east; indu(l. iva-like the full moon; pka la(l.
pracyam
complete in
every respect.
TRANSLATION
The demigods and great saintly persons showered flowers in a
joyous mood, and clouds gathered in the sky and very mildly thun
dered, making sounds like those of the ocean's waves. Then the
(5.37):
ananda-cinmaya-rasa-pratibhavitabhis
tabhir ya eva nija-nlpataya kalabhi(l.
goloka eva nivasaty akhilatma-bhuto
govindam adi-puraril tam aham bhajami
This verse indicates that J}.a and His entourage are of the same spiri
tual potency (ananda-cinmaya-rasa). I].a's father, His mother, His
friends the cowherd boys, and the cows are all expansions of Qa, as
will be explained in the brahma-vimohana-lilii. When Brahma took
away }U.J}.a's associates to test the supremacy of Lord J}.a, the Lord
expanded Himself again in the forms of the many cowherd boys and
calves, all of whom, as Brahma saw, were vu-murtis. Devaki is also an
expansion of J}.a, and therefore this verse says, devakyaril deva
Text
8]
1,18
209
was the sound of mild waves, and above the sea there were clouds in the
sky which began to thunder very pleasingly.
When things were adjusted like this, Lord ViQu, who is
residing
within the heart of every living entity, appeared in the darkness of night
as the Supreme Personality of Godhead before Devaki, who appeared
as
say
Those who are not in full knowledge that the appearance and disap
pearance of the Lord are transcendental
antaryiimi,
Srimad-Bhigavatam
210
asuras
nary child and passed away from this world like an ordinary man. Such
asuric conceptions are rejected by persons in knowledge of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead.
TEXTS 9-10
.
({ ':' . ;n'ii
t<::fi9;<::1 I
f.rttl
rfut ij'lt( II II
\'
r--
\' l(lf!'f}O,g
R'4qf ....
"""
e-t I
Tlf.f;T i4<::1JflFro ({ II Z 011
"
"
Text 10]
211
balakam-child;
ambuja-ia
Srivatsa,
gala-sobhi
kaustubham-on His neck was the Kaustubha gem, which is particularly
available in Vaiku1,1thaloka; pita-ambaram-His garments were yellow;
sandra-payoda-saubhagam-vry beautiful, being present with the hue
of blackish clouds; maha-arha-vaidurya-kirita-kur;r4nla-of His helmet
and earrings, which were studded with very valuable Vaidiirya gems;
TRANSLATION
Vasudeva then saw the newborn child, who had very wonderful
lotuslike eyes and who bore in His four hands the four weapons
sailkha, cakra, gada and padma. On His chest was the mark of
yellow, His body blackish like a dense cloud, His scattered hair
wonderful.
Srimad-Bhigavatam
212
PURPORT
To support the word adbhutam, meaning "wonderful," the decora
tions and opulences of the newborn child are fully described. As
confirmed in the Brahma-samhita (5.30), barhavatarhsam asitambuda
society has ever been born with four hands. And when is a child born
with fully grown hair? The descent of the Lord, therefore, is completely
distinct from the birth of an ordinary child. The Vaidurya gem, which
sometimes appears bluish, sometimes yellow and sometimes red, is
available in Vaiku1,1thaloka. The Lord's helmet and earrings were
decorated with this particular gem.
TEXT 11
$@R m
WI ltlltttlfi1 I
"'
"'
;;...
ttOII*IIkS'{
ts'ilm tttfl1{_11 zn
ij'
,.....
.....
,.....,
sa vismayotphulla-vilocano harim
vismaya
213
Text 12]
TRANSLATION
When Vasudeva saw his extraordinary son, his eyes were struck
with wonder. In transcendental jubilation, he mentally collected
ten thousand cows and distributed them among the brihmal}.as as a
transcendental festival.
PURPORT
atriyas do to
(advaya-jnana).
C'
"lli!\6Jp:f
t:rn{W:
.......:. "
q-
: : I
,......
1'$14!
-A
, "' +i:
""'
.._..
+Jmr
""
..,1'1'J._
II
214
Srimad-Bhigavatam
krta-anjali-with
folded
hands;
sva-roc4a-by
the
Struck with such great wonder, Vasudeva now concentrated his atten
tion on the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Understanding the in
fluence of the Supreme Lord, he was surely fearless, since he understood
that the Lord had appeared to give him protection
(gata-bhi prabhava
fft-1
tsffl.::1R:I
:
m
Text 14]
215
sri-vasudeva uvaca
kevaliinubhaviinanda
svarapatt sarva-buddhi-drk
siiiit-directly;
pur l.L att-the Supreme Person; prak rte tt- to material nature; paratt
Within Vasudeva's heart, affection for his son and knowledge of the
Supreme Lord's transcendental nature both awakened. In the beginning
Vasudeva thought, "Such a beautiful child has been born, but now
Kamsa will come and kill Him." But when he understood that this was
not an ordinary child but the Supreme Personality of Godhead, he be
came fearless. Regarding his son as the Supreme Lord, wonderful in
everything, he began offering prayers appropriate for the Supreme Lord.
Completely free from fear of Kamsa's atrocities, he accepted the child
simultaneously as an object of affection and as an object of worship by
prayers.
TEXT 14
.....
.....
,.....,
+:.=;t
l ""gml1u 7'4 I
Bi f?r!: II
Srimad-Bhagavatam
216
sa eva svaprakrtyedam
srtvagre tri-gur:uitmakam
tad anu tvam hy apravtatt
pravta iva bhdvyase
satt-He (the Supreme Personality of Godhead);
eva-indeed; sva
prakrtya-by Your personal energy (mayiidhyaer:w prakrtitt suyate
sa-cariicaram); idam-this material world; smva-after creating;
agre-in the beginning; tri-gur:w-atmakam-made of three modes of
energy
Lordship;
hi-indeed;
apravtatt-although
You
did
not
enter;
TRANSLATION
My Lord, You are the same person who in the beginning created
this material world by His personal external energy. After the cre
ation of this world of three gui;UlS [sattva, rajas and tamas], You ap
pear to have entered it, although in fact You have not.
PURPORT
In
explains:
rajo-gur:w
tamo-gur:w-is a composition of earth, water, :fire, air, mind, intelli
,
gence and false ego, all of which are energies coming from KrI).a, yet
KrI).a, being always transcendental, is aloof from this material world.
Those who are not in pure knowledge think that KrI).a is a product of
matter and that His body is material like ours
(avajiinanti miim
mW;lhatt}. In fact, however, KtI).a is always aloof from this material
world.
Text
14]
.Kr1,1a
217
Brahma-samhita (5.35):
partially exhibited as
world
yasyaika-ni.Svasita-kdlam athavalambya
jivanti loma-vilaja jagad-ar:u;ia-nathatt
vur mahan sa iha yasya kalii-vi.Seo
govindam ddi-puram tam aham bhajami
This verse describes Mahii-Viu as a plenary expansion of a. Mahii
Viu lies on the Causal Ocean, and when He exhales, millions of
brahmar:u;ias, or universes, come from the pores of His body. Then, when
brahmat;las disappear. Thus the millions
of brahmar:u;ias controlled by the Brahmiis and other demigods come and
Mahii-Viu inhales, all these
Prav1a
iva bhavyase: He only seemed to have entered the womb of Devaki and
Srimad-Bhagavatam
218
(4.34)
therefore recommends:
TEXTS 15-17
msf?ltn lltclffil N: 1
tp.F Fro ttiRI 1l 1111
_..._....:.
1'\ ('
.,
II ''-'1
"1:
"
"
"
sld1 1
Rttilf:ll"54 ijqjf'c : II II
W-Jf.l ('i41+(tf(.'SIIIft'"'
if
d{gOII:
l'!dli! R(RI WI
C'
('
W-1' W-m'A
3TRi"i:
te
vikrtai saha
nana-virya prthag-bhata
virajam janayanti hi
II \911
Text 17]
219
K.rfl}.a
sannipatya samutpddya
drsyante nugata iva
priig eva vidyamanatvan
na team iha sambhava}:r.
'
v irya/:1.
drsyante-they appear;
Srimad-Bhagavatam
220
[Canto 10,
Ch. 3
man ifestation
ceive some things, but not everything; for example, we can use
our eyes to see, but not to taste. Consequently, You are beyond
perception by the senses. Although in touch with the modes of ma
terial nature, You are unaffected by them. You are the prime factor
(9.4):
maya tatam idam sarvam
jagad-avyakta-murtinii
mat-sthani sarva-bhutiini
na
gross material senses. It is said that Lord Sri :Kr?l,la's name, fame,
(5.38):
premiifijana-cchurita-bhakti-vilocanena
santal;t sadaiva hrdayeu vilokayanti
One can
see
Text
17]
221
I].a
tal loving attitude toward Him. Thus for people in general, He is not visi
ble. In the above-mentioned verse from
Bhagavad-gita,
therefore, it is
Bhagavad-gitd,
Bhagavad-gita,
He is everywhere
Srimad-Bhiigavatam
222
(Canto I 0, Ch. 3
The total material energy remains intact even after being divided into
sixteen elements. The material body is nothing but a combination of the
five gross elements-namely earth, water, fire, air and ether. Whenever
there is a material body, it appears that such elements are newly created,
but actually the elements are always existing outside of the body.
Similarly, although You appear as a child in the womb of Devaki, You are
also existing outside. You are always in Your abode, but still You can
simultaneously expand Yourself into millions of forms.
"One has to understand Your appearance with great intelligence be
cause the material energy is also emanating from You. You are the
original source of the material energy, just as the sun is the source of the
sunshine. The sunshine cannot cover the sun globe, nor can the material
energy-being an emanation from You-cover You. You appear to be in
the three modes of material energy, but actually the three modes of ma
terial energy cannot cover You. This is understood by the highly intellec
tual philosophers. In other words, although You appear to be within the
material energy, You are never covered by it."
We hear from the Vedic version that the Supreme Brahman exhibits
His effulgence and therefore everything is illuminated. We can under
stand from Brahma-samhita that the
brahmajyoti,
or the Brahman
effulgence, emanates from the body of the Supreme Lord. And from the
Brahman effulgence, all creation takes place. It is further stated in the
TEXT 18
;.r
3TmRl tgiil!!
"-'""3
(1ottM1ii1:n I
;:r :;](
.-'("'l Md
tt6'ffifl\41G\G\d\ I I <:I I
Gs i!!l:n)
Text 18]
223
vinanuvadam
na
ca tan mani{iitam
fully; yatalz,-be
224
Srimad-Bhagavatam
Again, there are those who reject the body, regarding it as insubstan
tial. They are of the same category of fools. One can neither reject the
body nor accept it as substantial. The substance is the Supreme Per
sonality of Godhead, and both the body and the soul are energies of the
Supreme Godhead, as described by the Lord Himself in Bhagavad-gita
(7.4-5):
bhamir apo 'nalo vayub,
kham mano buddhir eva ca
ahaitkara itiyam me
bhinna prakrtir atadha
apareyam itas tv anyam
prakrtim viddhi me param
jiva-bhatam maha-baho
yayedam dharyate jagat
"Earth, water, fire, air, ether, mind, intelligence and false ego-all
together these eight comprise My separated material energies. But
besides this inferior nature, 0 mighty-armed Arjuna, there is a superior
energy of Mine, which consists of all living entities who are struggling
with material nature and are sustaining the universe."
The body, therefore, has a relationship with the Supreme Personality
of Godhead, just as the soul does. Since both of them are energies of the
Lord, neither of them is false, because they come from the reality. One
who does not know this secret of life is described as abudhab,. According
to the Vedic injunctions, aitadatmyam idam sarvam, sarvam khalv idam
terial world are Brahman, and we cannot make the ingredients of this
world independent of Brahman. Furthermore, since the ingredients and
the immediate cause of this material manifestation are Brahman, both of
Text 19]
225
TEXT 19
)sntfliW:fRt44il'{ Nit
ta;W04;{1(11:\gulll:\NQi16\
;mfUr ;it m
Q
gUT: IIZQ..Il
tvatto 'sya janma-sthiti-samyaman vibho
vadanty anihad agu'{Uid avikriyat
tvayiSvare brahmaTJi no virudhyate
tvad-asrayatvad upacaryate gu7Jaibtvattab,-are from Your Lordship;
avikriyat-who are
Srimad-Bhagavatam
226
227
Text 20]
TEXT 20
Ne1ij
'ilttttl
:1
- ooitqimt
"'
PIT or \SiWiiEtltl II o II
sa tvam tri-loka-sthitaye sva-mdyaya
bibhar$i suklam khalu Va71Wm atmanatJ,
sargaya raktam rajasopabrmhitam
kmwm ca va71Wril tamasa janatyaye
sab- tvam-Your Lordship, who are the same person, the Transcen
dence; tri-loka-sthitaye-to maintain the three worlds, the upper, mid
dle and lower planetary systems; sva-mdyaya-by Your personal energy
creation.
TRANSLATION
My Lord, Your form is transcendental to the three material
modes, yet for the maintenance of the three worlds, You assume
the white color of Vi,u in goodness; for creation, which is sur
. rounded by the quality of passion, You appear reddish; and at the
end, when there is a need for annihilation, which is surrounded by
ignorance, You appear blackish.
PURPORT
Vasudeva prayed to the Lord, "You are called
suklam. Suklam,
or
rakta, or
228
Srimad-Bhigavatam
(Canto
10,
Ch. 3
Siva
bakandha-nyaya, the duck is such a fool that it runs after the testicles of
a bull, thinking them to be a hanging fish that can be taken when it
drops. Thus the duck is always in darkness. Vyasadeva, however, the
compiler of the Vedic literature, is blackish, but this does not mean that
he is in tamo-gur;r.a; rather, he is in the highest position of sattva-gur;r.a,
beyond the material modes of nature. Sometimes these colors (sukla
Siva
(16.19):
Text 21]
229
angry, and therefore He assumes the form of Lord Siva. In summary, the
Supreme Personality of Godhead is always beyond the material qualities,
ft
s=:tffioiism RC4e
"'
!"'1'1t44(111hh'4'
OI{Q+UwtT lwtlwtQ( : II II
ffl
.
"
"
am
kill all the armies that are moving all over the world under the
leadership of politicians who are dressed
as
are factually demons. They must be killed by You for the protec
tion of the innocent public.
Srimad-Bhigavatam
230
PURPORT
Kn1,1a appears in this world for two purposes, paritrar;ulya sadhanam
vinasaya ca dkrtam: to protect the innocent, religious devotees of the
Lord and to annihilate all the uneducated, uncultured asuras, who un
necessarily bark like dogs and fight among themselves for political
power. It is said, kali-kale nama-rape km:w avatara. The Hare 1,1a
movement is also an incarnation of J}.a in the form of the holy name
(nama-rape). Every one of us who is actually afraid of the asuric rulers
and politicians must welcome this incarnation of J}.a: Hare J}.a,
Hare J}.a, J}.a J}.a, Hare Hare/ Hare Rama, Hare Rama, Riima
Rama, Hare Hare. Then we will surely be protected from the harassment
of asuric rulers. At the present moment these rulers are so powerful that
by hook or by crook they capture the highest posts in government and
harass countless numbers of people on the plea of national security or
some emergency. Then again, one asura defeats another asura, but the
public continues to suffer. Therefore the entire world is in a precarious
condition, and the only hope is this Hare J}.a movement. Lord
N:rsimhadeva appeared when Prahliida was excessively harassed by his
asuric father. Because of such asuric fathers-that is, the ruling politi
cians-it is very difficult to press forward the Hare J}.a movement,
but because 1,1a has now appeared in His holy name through this
movement, we can hope that these asuric fathers will be annihilated and
the kingdom of God established all over the world. The entire world is
now full of many asuras in the guise of politicians, gurus, sadhus, yogis
and incarnations, and they are misleading the general public away from
J}.a consciousness, which can offer true benefit to human society.
TEXT 22
"
;ft
;ql
-:
1111
231
Text 22]
sa
te
srutvoohunaivabhisaraty udayudha
( asura means
hearing;
agrajan
te-all
the
brothers
born
before
You;
te-Your; avatdram-ap
as
men, do not care about that. At the present moment, the killing of cows
and the killing of children is going on unrestrictedly, and therefore this
civilization is not at all human, and those who are conducting this con
demned civilization are uncivilized asuras.
Such uncivilized men are not in favor of the .KrQa consciousness
movement. As public officers, they declare without hesitation that the
Srimad-Bhagavatam
232
the Hare 1,1a mantra and try to spread it all over the world to the best
and stop the Hare 1,1a movement. Such uncivilized activities were ac
center, Hare 1,1a Land. As Kamsa was not expected to kill the beautiful
expected to stop it. Yet we must face many difficulties in many different
ways. Although 1,1a cannot he killed, Vasudeva, .as the father of
sciousness movement and f?Qa are not different and no asuras can
check it, we are afraid that at any moment the asuras can stop this move
ment in any part of the world.
TEXT 23
igqfff
aNwt114J I
mm{T mm ,,':(''
sri-suka uvdca
athainam dtmajam viya
maha-purUa-laar;tam
devaki tam upadhavat
kamsad bhita suvismita
sri-suka/:t uvdca-Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said; atha-after this offer
(?Qa);
upadhavat-offered prayers;
kamsat-of
Text 24]
233
head, Devaki, who was very much afraid of Kamsa and unusually
astonished, began to offer prayers to the Lord.
PURPORT
The word suvismita, meaning "astonished," is significant in this
verse. Devaki and her husband, Vasudeva, were assured that their child
was the Supreme Personality of Godhead and could not be killed by
Karhsa, but because of affection, as they thought of Kamsa's previous
atrocities, they were simultaneously afraid that KrJ:.la would be killed.
This is why the word suvismita has been used. Similarly, we are also
astounded upon thinking of whether this movement will be killed by the
ct<iT'if
suott'ffi+nti
;m iif.lguf fwtfefC61('J I
fwtfefti
QII+i(('tq: II
ffil_
sri-devaky uvaca
rapam yat tat prahur avyaktam adyam
brahma jyotir nirgu"{tam nirvikaram
satta-matram nirviSeam niriham
sa tvam saad vr;tur adhyatma-dipa
sri-devaki uvaca -Sri Devaki said; rapam -form or substance; yat
tat-because You are the same substance; prahu- You are sometimes
234
Srimad-Bhagavatam
mind. Yet You are the origin of the entire cosmic manifestation.
like the sun. You have no material cause, You are free from change
and deviation, and You have no material desires. Thus the Vedas
say that You are the substance. Therefore, my Lord, You are
directly the origin of all Vedic statements, and by understanding
from the light of Brahman and Paramatma, yet You are not dif
ferent from them. Everything emanates from You. Indeed, You are
the cause of all causes, Lord Vi!ilu, the light of all transcendental
knowledge.
PURPORT
who is also
Paramii.tmii. and the effulgent Brahman. The living entities are also part
and parcel of Vi?QU, who has various energies (parasya saktir vividhaiva
Text
24]
,Kna
235
(saroa-kara-karam).
nirakara-niroiSe a-brahmajyoti.
Mahesvara, and from them many other demigods are manifested. t;ta
therefore says in
ye 'py anya-devata-bhakta
yajante sraddhayanvitab,
te 'pi mam eva kaunteya
yajanty avidhi-paroakam
"Whatever a man may sacrifice to other gods, 0 son of Kunti, is really
meant for Me alone, but it is offered without true understanding."
(Bg.
9.23)
considering all of them to be separate gods, which in fact they are not.
The fact is that every demigod, and every living entity, is part and parcel
of Qa
the category of living entities; they are not separate gods. But men whose
knowledge is immature and contaminated by the modes of material
nature worship various demigods, according to their intelligence.
not very advanced and have not properly considered the truth, they take
to the worship of various demigods or speculate according to various phi
losophies, such as the Mayavada philosophy.
t;ta, Vit;tu, is the actual origin of everything. As stated in the
Srimad-Bhigavatam
236
[Canto
1 O,
Ch. 3
the same Lord Vil}u had appeared as her son. Therefore, after the
You are original because all Your forms as incarnations are outside of this
material creation. Your form was existing before this cosmic manifesta
tion was created. Your forms are eternal and all-pervading. They are
self-effulgent, changeless and uncontaminated by the material qualities.
Such eternal forms are evercognizant and full of bliss; they are situated
You are not limited to a particular form only; all such transcendental,
eternal forms are self-sufficient. I can understand that You are the
acintya-bhediibheda-tattva philosophy.
TEXT 25
ftq
I
4-ilwt
: s:
II
e loke dvi-pariirdhiivasiine
maha-bhutev iidi-bhutam gateu
Text
25]
237
water, fire, air and ether); adi-bhatam gateu-enter within the subtle
TRANSLATION
Mter millions of years, at the time of cosmic annihilation, when
everything, manifested and unmanifested, is annihilated by the
force of time, the five gross elements enter into the subtle concep
tion, and the manifested categories enter into the unmanifested
substance. At that time, You alone remain, and You are known as
Ananta Seja-niga.
PURPORT
fire, air and ether-enter into the mind, intelligence and false ego
(ahankara), and the entire cosmic manifestation enters into the spiritual
Brahma comes to the end of his life, the annihilation of the cosmic
water, fire, air and ether-enter into the mahat-tattva. The mahat-tattva
again enters, by the force of time, into the nonmanifested total material
energy; the total material energy enters into the energetic pradhdna, and
the pradhana enters into You. Therefore after the annihilation of the
Srimad-Bhigavatam
238
"My Lord, I offer my respectful obeisances unto You because You are
the director of the unmanifested total energy, and the ultimate reservoir
of the material nature. My Lord, the whole cosmic manifestation is under
the influence of time, beginning from the moment up to the duration of
the year. All act under Your direction. You are the original director of
everything and the reservoir of all potent energies."
TEXT 26
Sott'ffiil"
!1'1f ir.f I
'1'41
..ffl
41&.('
m II
st{
(ij
"'
Vifl}u. For Your pastimes, You act as the controller of time, but
Text 26]
239
You are the reservoir of all good fortune. Let me offer my full
surrender unto Your Lordship.
PURPORT
As stated in the Brahma-samhita
(5.52):
Srimad-Bhigavatam
240
potter himself. Therefore the Lord, who is behind the motion of the cos
mos, is called
but time moves under the direction of the Lord, who is therefore not
within time's limit.
TEXT 27
.mr: qettt'l
...:
+i ;n
.._
*qli
"""-s
ma;r ttt'4f41Q
11\911
na
persons; apaiti-Hees.
TRANSLATION
No one in this material world has become free from the four
various planets. But now that You have appeared, My Lord, death is
mental peace.
Text
27)
241
'a
PURPORT
There are different categories of living entities, but everyone is afraid
of death. The highest aim of the
karmis is
kdla),
sastra,
(dvi-parardha
martya-loka. As
Bhagavad-gita (8.16), abrahma-bhuvanal lokd/:1, punar
avartino 'rjuna: as long as one is within this material world, either on
Brahmaloka or on any other loka within this universe, one must undergo
the kdla-cakra of one life after another (bhatva bhatva praliyate). But if
one returns to the Supreme Personality of Godhead (yad gatva na
nivartante), one need not reenter the limits of time. Therefore, devotees
Kr!?J;la says in
who have taken shelter of the lotus feet of the Supreme Lord can sleep
very peacefully with this assurance from the Supreme Personality of
Godhead. As confirmed in
janma naiti:
hanyate
But because of having fallen into this material world, one wanders
within the universe, continually changing from one body to another.
Caitanya Mahaprabhu says:
Srimad-Bhigavatam
242
Everyone is wandering up and down within this universe, but one who is
sufficiently fortunate comes in contact with l<rI;ta consciousness, by the
mercy of the spiritual master, and takes to the path of devotional service.
Then one is assured of eternal life, with no fear of death. When l<rI;ta
appears, everyone is freed from fear of death, yet Devaki felt, "We are
still afraid of Kamsa, although You have appeared as our son." She was
more or less bewildered as to why this should be so, and she appealed to
the Lord to free her and Vasudeva from this fear.
In this connection, it may be noted that the moon is one of the
heavenly planets. From the Vedic literature we understand that one who
goes to the moon receives a life with a duration of ten thousand years in
which to enjoy the fruits of pious activities. If our so-called scientists are
going to the moon, why should they come back here? We must conclude
without a doubt that they have never gone to the moon. To go to the
moon, one must have the qualification of pious activities. Then one may
go there and live. If one has gone to the moon, why should he return to
this planet, where life is of a very short duration?
TEXT 28
ijk4\JIIiil'
qH1}4
4!ttN'II('{W
er.
&lf
+4i('{tli :
I
II
Text 28]
meditation; md-not;
p ratyaam-directly
243
visible; mdmsa-drsam-to
The word
dhyana-dhr;tyam
yogis (dhyanavasthita-tad
had appeared as Vi1,1u, to conceal that form, for she wanted to see the
Lord as an ordinary child, like a child appreciated by persons who have
material eyes. Devaki wanted to see whether the Supreme Personality of
Godhead had factually appeared or she was dreaming the ViI,lU form. If
Kamsa were to come, she thought, upon seeing the Vi1,1u form he would
immediately kill the child, but if he saw a human child, he might recon
sider. Devaki was afraid of Ugrasena-atmaja; that is, she was afraid not
of Ugrasena and his men, but of the son of Ugrasena. Thus she requested
the Lord to dissipate that fear, since He is always ready to give protection
(abhayam)
save me from the cruel hands of the son of Ugrasena, Kamsa. I am pray
ing to Your Lordship to please rescue me from this fearful condition be
cause You are always ready to give protection to Your servitors." The
Lord has confirmed this statement in the
Bhagavad-gita
by assuring
Srimad-Bhigavatam
244
[Canto
10,
Ch. 3
our material eyes." In other words, she requested the Lord to assume the
form of an ordinary child. "My only cause of fear from my brother
Kamsa is due to Your appearance. My Lord Madhusiidana, Kamsa may
know that You are already horn. Therefore I request You to conceal this
four-armed form of Your Lordship, which holds the four symbols of
Vir;m-namely the conchshell, the disc, the club and the lotus flower.
My dear Lord, at the end of the annihilation of the cosmic manifestation,
You put the whole universe within Your abdomen; still, by Your
unalloyed mercy, You have appeared in my womb. I am surprised that
You imitate the activities of ordinary human beings just to please Your
devotee."
Devaki was so afraid of Kamsa that she could not believe that Karilsa
would he unable to kill Lord ViJ}.u, who was personally present. Out of
motherly affection, therefore, she requested the Supreme Personality of
Godhead to disappear. Although because of the Lord's disappearance
Kamsa would harass her more and more, thinking that the child horn of
her was hidden somewhere, she did not want the transcendental child to
he harassed and killed. Therefore she requested Lord ViJ}.u to disappear.
Later, when harassed, she would think of Him within her mind.
TEXT 29
ijqm,,
smD'da
: :
janma te mayy asau papo
ma
vidyan madhusadana
samudvije bhavad-dhetob,
kamsad aham adhira-dhib,
janma-the birth; te-o Your Lordship; mayi-in my (womb);
asau-that Kamsa; pdpab,-extremely sinful; md vidyat-may he un
able to understand; madhusildana-0 Madhusiidana; samudvije-1 am
Text 30]
245
TRANSLATION
q
'3'""'""'Q ((
....
"'
t:::.
1q:Qkfl'itl
........,.
...,
_...,,...a:
...
Q
oqtf141N<i
qf(t
I
II oil
upasamhara viSviitmann
ado rupam alaukikam
sankha-cakra-gadd-padma
sriya i!am catur-bhujam
upasamhara-withdraw; vi.Svatman-0 all-pervading Supreme Per
sonality of Godhead; ada-that; rupam-form; alaukikam-which is
unnatural in this world; sankha-cakra-gadd-padma-of the conchshell,
disc, club and lotus; sriya-with these opulences; ja-m-decorated;
catu-bhujam-four hands.
TRANSLATION
Srimad-Bhigavatam
246
withdraw this form [and become just like a natural human child so
ft Pt11
..
rr.:l'lfilm
:tl
'"'
1RT
m ffi f{ ffil_ II II
viSvarh yad etat sva-tanau niSante
yathavakaSam puab- paro bhavan
bibharti so 'yam mama garbhago 'bhad
aho nr-lokasya vU;lambanam hi tat
viSvam-the entire cosmic manifestation; yat etat-containing all
moving and nonmoving creations;
Text 31]
247
body and is held there without difficulty. But now this transcen
dental form has taken birth from my womb. People will not be
able to believe this, and I shall become an object of ridicule.
PURPORT
premafijana-cchurita-bhakti-vilocanena
santab- sadaiva hrdaye$u vilokayanti
yam syamasundaram acintya-gur,w-svaruparil
govindam adi-puaril tam aham bhajami
(Brahma-samhita
5.38)
Pure devotees, whose eyes are anointed with the ointment of premd,
Muralidhara, with a flute swaying in His two hands. This is the form
available to the inhabitants of V:rndavana, who are all in love with the
mother of K:rI).a is Devaki. In Mathura and Dvaraka the love for the
Godhead
the platform of vatsalya. She wanted to deal with her eternal son, l(:rI).a,
in that stage of love, and therefore she wanted the Supreme Personality
(14.26):
Srimad-Bhagavatam
248
[Canto
10,
Ch. 3
mam ca yo 'vyabhicarer;ta
bhakti-yogena sevate
sa gur;tan samatityaitan
brahma-bhayaya kalpate
"One who engages in the spiritual activities of unalloyed devotional ser
in
are beyond this material world and are not subject to material fear. In the
simple knowledge, love mixed with knowledge, and pure love. By simple
of Godhead. But when one reaches pure love, one realizes the transcen
dental form of the Lord as Lord Kr!?f;ia or Lord Rama. This is what is
wanted. Especially in the
Personality of Godhead
the Lord with a flute in His hands is most attractive, and the one who is
understand
Text 32]
249
R
-
"
<:'
"
..,.;.
\Cffi
if: 'lf:
'f.i'i I
T ;nq Sf:stlqRti(!+t'1 : II' II
+i!:t
sri-bhagavan uvdca
tvam eva purva-sarge 'bhub,
prsnib, svayambhuve sati
tadayam sutapa nama
prajapatir akalmab,
sri-bhagavan uvaca-the Supreme Personality of Godhead said to
Devaki; tvam-you; eva-indeed; purva-sarge-in a previous millen
nium; abhab,-became; prsnib,-by the name P:rsni; svayambhuve-the
millennium of Svayambhuva Manu; sati-0 supremely chaste; tadd-at
that time; ayam-Vasudeva; sutapd-Sutapli; nama-by the name;
prajapatib,-a Prajapati; akalab,-a spotlessly pious person.
TRANSLATION
The Supreme Personality of Godhead replied: My dear mother,
best of the chaste, in your previous birth, in the Sviyambhuva
millennium, you were known as P:rsni, and Vasudeva, who was the
most pious Prajipati, was named Sutapi.
PURPORT
[Canto
Srimad-Bhagavatam
250
10,
Ch. 3
.KrQa as their son. This pastime takes place eternally and is therefore
called nitya-lila. Thus there was no cause for surprise or ridicule. As
(4.9):
The Lord appears as the son of His devotee by His param bhavam. The
word bhava refers to the stage of pure love, which has nothing to do with
material transactions.
TEXT 33
I
Pnr.!i.l!'
st:::iil :
Siiiii;.ns.IISiii: m (fq: IIII
.
'""{'
Text 33]
251
(13.9),
janma-mrtyu-jara-vyadhi-dub.kha-do$iinu
darsanam: birth, death, old age and disease are certainly the primary
distresses of the material world. People are trying to control birth, but
they are not able to control death; and if one cannot control death, one
cannot control birth either. In other words, artificially controlling birth is
not any more feasible than artificially controlling death.
According to Vedic civilization, procreation should not be contrary to
religious principles, and then the birthrate will be controlled. As stated
in Bhagavad-gita
(7 .11),
Srimad-Bhigavatam
252
[Canto 10,
Cb. 3
Bhagavatam
(5.5.18),
unless one is able to protect his child from mrtyu, the path of birth and
death. But where is there education about this? A responsible father
never begets children like cats and dogs. Instead of being encouraged to
adopt artificial means of birth control, people should be educated in
"Kr:Q.a consciousness because only then will they understand their re
sponsibility to their children. If one can beget children who will be
devotees and be taught to turn aside from the path of birth and death
TEXTS 34-35
('
('
Cf'fl<:tqfu+tq41lfii!JI1f
"""
_,('tl'ft'l41"fl
:
"'
q ._, '11"11wt 1..<:t'l'il4I
II 'd II
fiofqottMI(l(liqu--6'i
I
: 'Jq:r;:m l(: '-\11
vara-vdtdtapa-hima
gharma-kala-guT,Uin anu
sahamdnau svdsa-rodha
vinirdhata-mano-malau
sin;ta-parT,Uinilaharav
upaantena cetasd
Text 35]
253
Vasudeva and Devaki did not obtain the Supreme Personality of God
head as their son very easily, nor does the Supreme Godhead accept
merely anyone as His father and mother. Here we can see how Vasudeva
and Devaki obtained K:rQa as their eternal son. In our own lives, we are
meant to follow the principles indicated herewith for getting good
children. Of course, it is not possible for everyone to get K:rQa as his son,
hut at least one can get very good sons and daughters for the benefit of
human society. In Bhagavad-gita it is said that if human beings do not
follow the spiritual way of life, there will he an increase of va11Ul
sarikara population, population begotten like cats and dogs, and the en
tire world will become like hell. Not practicing K:rQa consciousness hut
simply encouraging artificial means to check the population will he
futile; the population will increase, and it will consist of va71W-sarikara,
unwanted progeny. It is better to teach people how to beget children not
like hogs and dogs, hut in controlled life.
Human life is meant not for becoming a hog or dog, hut for tapo
divyam, transcendental austerity. Everyone should he taught to undergo
Srimad-Bhigavatam
254
astra
austerities;
tivram-very severe;
TRANSLATION
Thus you spent twelve thousand celestial year perform
TEXTS 37-38
S(+UJwtT crir I
=ill: 11\911
Text 38]
.
nT
255
"
ft1'7Y
1
a:
tm : qm,ffi'"'
snR1
) qt : wr:
....
Twelve thousand years on the celestial planets is not a very long time
for those who live in the upper planetary system, although it may be very
256
Srimad-Bhagavatam
(Canto 10,
Cb. 3
long for those who live on this planet. Sutapa was the son of Brahma, and
(8.17),
one day of
careful to understand that to get .Kr:Q.a as one's son, one must undergo
janma naiti miim eti so 'rjuna), we need only understand Him and love
Him. Through love only, we can very easily go back home, back to God
head. Sri Caitanya Mahaprabhu therefore ,declared, premii pum-artho
jfiiina, jnanamayi and rati, or love. Sutapa and his wife, Prsni, in
and when this love was mature, the Lord appeared as Vi:Q.u, although
Devaki then requested Him to assume the form of .Kr:Q.a. To love the
especially.
In this age, we are all fallen, but the Supreme Personality of Godhead
namo maha-vadanyaya
kmuz-prema-pradaya te
kr$1Jiiya kmw-caitanyanamne gaura-tvi$e nafflfl/:t
In this verse, Sri Caitanya Mahaprabhu is described as maha-vadanya,
easily that one can attain .KrQa simply by chanting the Hare .Kr:Q.a
257
Text 39]
only object of love
vrajet).
Therefore, one need not undergo severe penances for many thousands
of years; one need only learn how to love Kr!?I;la and be always engaged in
His service (sevonmukhe hi jihvadau svayam eva sphuraty
adaM. Then
one can very easily go back home, back to Godhead. Instead of bringing
the Lord here for some material purpose, to have a son or whatever else,
if we go back home, back to Godhead, our real relationship with the Lord
tionship with the Supreme Person and thus attain the perfection called
3lR4" :q I
;r 1f mrt "
'*"
G>!f4 " t'r"'"''
4
l 4 1 II II
......
......
ajta-gramya-vayav
anapatyau ca dam-pati
na vavrathe 'pavargarh me
mohitau deva-mayaya
ajta-gramya-vayau-for sex life and to beget a child like Me;
apavargam-liberation
from
this
world;
me-from
Me;
Being husband and wife but always sonless, you were attracted
by sexual desires, for by the influence of devamiyi, transcendental
258
Srimad-Bhagavatam
as
time of Sutapa and P:rsni, and they wanted to remain husband and wife
in order to have the Supreme Personality of Godhead as their son. This
one's son is a Vedic principle. Vasudeva and Devaki never desired any
thing but to have the Lord as their son, yet for this purpose they ap
parently wanted to live like ordinary
like attachment for sex in conjugal life. If one wants to return home,
back to Godhead, one must give up such desires. This is possible only
when one develops intense love for the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
Sri Caitanya Mahaprabhu has said:
n4kiiicanasya bhagavad-bhajanonmukhasya
piiram param jigam4or bhava-siigarasya
(Cc. Madhya 11.8)
If one wants to go back home, back to Godhead, one must be
n4kiiicana,
free from all material desires. Therefore, instead of desiring to have the
Lord come here and become one's son, one should desire to become free
Your causeless devotional service, birth after birth." One should not ask
Text 41]
259
TEXT 40
tiT
+ifflt!ii I
S
SfiH4'11 lloll
ftt'sii'P'I'Iana
-31t-;--,;:qa....;i : 1
3Tt m 'lf 16 :
260
Srimad-Bhagavatam
as
highly elevated
as
you in simplicity
PURPORT
In the Tretii-yuga the Lord appeared as Prsnigarhha. Srila Visvanatha
o:utRuue eti 1
W(atmi) cWi;f : ll'cill
tayor varh punar evaham
adityam dsa kaSyapat
upendra iti vikhyato
vamanatvdc ca vamana
tayo-of you two, husband and wife; vam-in both of you; puna
261
Text 43]
TRANSLATION
In the next millennium, I again appeared from the two of you,
who appeared as My mother, Aditi, and My father, KaSyapa. I was
known as Upendra, and because of being a dwarf, I was also known
asVimana.
TEXT 43
5{1
t4q it m ll'd n
trtiye 'smin bhave 'ham vai
tenaiva vapU$dtha vam
jato bhuyas tayor eva
satyam
me
vyahrtam sati
me- My;
vyahrtam-words;
same form." In other words, the Lord told Devaki, "This time I have
Srimad-Bhagavatam
262
appeared in My original form as Sri ?Qa." Srila }iva Gosvami says that
the other forms were partial expansions of the Lord's original form, but
because of the intense love developed by P:rsni and Sutapa, the Lord ap
peared from Devaki and Vasudeva in His full opulence as Sri ?Qa. In
this verse the Lord confirms, "I am the same Supreme Personality of
Godhead, but I appear in full opulence as Sri Qa." This is the purport
of the words tenaiva vapa. When the Lord mentioned the birth of
P:rsnigarbha, He did not say tenaiva vapa, but He assured Devaki that
peared, not His partial expansion. P:rsnigarbha and Vamana were partial
Gosviimi.
TEXT 44
err
1
ri;r
sr ,;\jfw-+((U,,tt
jayate-does arise.
TRANSLATION
I have shown you this form of Vitl,lU just to remind you of My
Text
45]
!ji].a
263
PURPORT
Devaki did not need to be reminded that the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, Lord Vi?I,lU, had appeared as her son; she already accepted
this. Nonetheless, she was anxious, thinking that if her neighbors heard
that Vi?I,lU had appeared as her son, none of them would believe it.
Therefore she wanted Lord Vi!?I,lU to transform Himself into a human
child. On the other hand, the Supreme Lord was also anxious, thinking
that if He appeared as an ordinary child, she would not believe that Lord
Vi!?I,lU had appeared. Such are the dealings between devotees and the
Lord. The Lord deals with His devotees exactly like a human being, but
this does not mean that the Lord is one of the human beings, for this is
the conclusion of nondevotees (avajananti mam mu{lha manim tanum
asri tam) . Devotees know the Supreme Personality of Godhead under any
TEXT
45
lU IW1_ I
P--.::::m ,; ffl" IIIJII
yuvam mam putra-bhavena
brahma-bhavena casakrt
cintayantau krta-snehau
yasyethe mad-gatim param
yuvam- both of you
(husband
Personality
of
Godhead;
ca-and;
asakrt-constantly;
Srimad-Bhagavatam
264
TRANSLATION
Both of you, husband and wife, constantly think of Me
am
as
your
Godhead.
PURPORT
This instruction by the Supreme Personality of Godhead to His father
tended for persons eager to return home, back to Godhead. One should
never think of the Supreme Personality of Godhead as an ordinary
Godhead, personally appeared and left His instructions for the benefit of
all human society, but fools and rascals unfortunately think of Him as an
terpretations they are spoiling their own careers and the careers of
Caitanya
Mahaprabhu
especially
stressed
the
instructions
of
Text 46]
265
Maharaja, the Lord personally instructed them that they should always
think of Him as their son and as the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
That would keep them in touch with Him. After eleven years, the Lord
TEXT 46
<IR
lWik+4+4ltt I
fqit: ffi: un: : 11
sri-suka uvaca
ity uktviisid dharis ti4ry,im
bhagavan atma-mayaya
pitro sampa5yato sadyo
babhuva prakrta siSu
sri-suka uvaca-Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said; iti uktva
after in
svayam.]
PURPORT
As stated in Bhagavad-gita
(4.6),
tual energy; nothing is forced upon Him by the material energy. This is
Srimad-Bhiigavatam
266
[Canto
10,
the difference between the Lord and an ordinary living being. The
say:
Ch.
Vedas
iu,
prakrta
one. Ordinary people may have difficulty accepting the supreme con.
troller, God, as a human being because they forget that He can do every
thing by spiritual energy
(atma-mayaya).
beyond the conception of our words and mind, we cannot understand the
Supreme Lord. Those who doubt that the Supreme Personality of God
head can come as a human being and turn Himself into a human child
are fools who think that a's body is material, that He is born and
29,
Srimad-Bhagavatam,
28
and
inquired from Sukadeva Gosvami, "When all the members of the Yadu
dynasty met their end, a also put an end to Himself, and the only
member of the family who remained alive was Uddhava. How was this
possible?" Sukadeva Gosvami answered that a, by Hisown energy,
destroyed the entire family and then thought of making His own body
energy.
Actually, the Lord does not give up His body, which is eternal, but as
He can change His body from the form of Viu to that of an ordinary
human child, He can change His body to any form He likes. This does not
mean that He gives up His body. By spiritual energy, the Lord can appear
Text
47]
267
K.ftJ}.a
in a body made of wood or stone. He can change His body into anything
because everything is His energy (parasya saktir vividhaiva snlyate). As
clearly said in Bhagavad-gita
the ma
47
IH'(+tltf)f-qiiG_ q:
wf (ilU((Itl Qjijl$1( I
if"Qilttt
tttllilttlfit mt 11\l\SII
of Nanda Maharaja.
Srimad-Bhagavatam
268
TRANSLATION
Thereafter, exactly when Vasudeva, being inspired by the
simultaneously as the son of Devaki and as the son of Yasoda, along with
the spiritual energy Yogamaya. As the son of Devaki, He first appeared as
Vi1,1u, and because Vasudeva was not in the position of pure affection
for l(rI,la, Vasudeva worshiped his son as Lord ViJ,lu. Yasoda, however,
pleased her son l(r1,1a without understanding His Godhood. This is the
difference between l(r1,1a as the son of Yasoda and as the son of Devaki.
vamsa.
TEXTS 48-49
st4(1
: t(lfq nlllir.4tr
eert: fqfun (41
'ttqll!lteeSLUt3 :
an t;&Jiii41
Olfef alit :
ffl i34i:
""
"
""
II
Text 49]
269
doormen;
firm;
brhat-kapata-and
on great
doors;
ayasa-kila-spikhalail,t
strongly constructed with iron pins and closed with iron chains; td}J,-all
of them;
kr$r;ta-vahe-bearing Knn:.1a;
vasudeve-when Vasudeva;
the door,
When Vasudeva was carrying the child, Sea-naga came to serve the
Lord and protect Him from the mild showers of rain.
Srimad-Bhiigavatam
270
TEXT 50
""""" \liT
q--6'
-'lo
......
"'
..
"'"
++ti((f1q1eti4'1'ilitet
Ndl(fliet
11'-\ 0 II
like the ocean; riyal) pate /:J,- unto Lord Ramacandra, the husband of the
goddess Si:ta.
TRANSLATION
Because of constant rain sent by the demigod lndra, the River
Yamuna was filled with deep water, foaming about with fiercely
the River Yamuna gave way to Vasudeva and allowed him to cross.
TEXT 51
;r (fl'I_
SltJfllqe
"'
"'
if IG\IIilit
J::o.........
1'11:11
(1c-
Text
52]
271
upetya-reaching;
cowherd
men;
tatra-there;
prasuptan-were
fast
asleep;
upala
52
: m tit a;IRtl'{ I
""-II
i_X.. m:r:t
....
..
_t -n II II
...
Srimad-Bhigavatam
272
devakyatt-of
Devaki;
vasudevatt-Vasudeva;
sayane-on
atha-thus;
the
bed;
nyasya-placing;
darikam-the
female
child;
TRANSLATION
Vasudeva placed the female child on the bed of Devaki, bound
his legs with the iron shackles, and thus remained there as before.
TEXT 53
;:a:q{it"t I
if i t q1aRt: 11'-\11
yaoda nanda-patni ca
jatam param abudhyata
na tal-lirigam pariSranta
nidrayapagata-smrtitt
yaodii-Yasoda, Krf(II;ta's mother in Gokula; nanda-patni-the wife
of Nanda Maharaja; ca-also; jatam-a child was born; param-the
Supreme Person;
abudhyata-could understand;
na-not;
tat-lin
TRANSLATION
Exhausted by the labor of childbirth, Ya8odi was overwhelmed
with sleep and unable to understand what kind of child had been
born to her.
PURPORT
Nanda Maharaja and Vasudeva were intimate friends, and so were
their wives, Yasoda and Devaki. Although their names were different,
they were practically nondifferent personalities. The only difference is
that Devaki was able to understand that the Supreme Personality of God-
Text 53]
273
head had been born to her and had now changed into Kra, whereas
Yasoda was not able to understand what kind of child had been born to
her. Yasoda was such an advanced devotee that she never regarded K:ra
though Kra was her son, He was the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
boys, Nanda Maharaja, Yasoda and the others-were surprised, but they
Sometimes they suggested that some great demigod had appeared there
forgets the position of Kra and intensely loves the Supreme Personality
bhakti and is distinct from the stages of jfidna and jnanamayi bhakti.
CHAPTER FOUR
275
[Canto 10,
S rimad-Bhagavatam
276
Ch. 4
Although the
since they were enemies, Karhsa should try his best to uproot their exis
tence. The demoniac ministers further advised that Karhsa and the
demons continue their enmity toward Vif?QU because Vif?QU is the original
person among all the demigods. The briihmar:tas, the cows, the Vedas,
mercy are among the different parts of the body of Vif?QU, who is the
origin of all the demigods, including Lord Brahma and Lord Siva.
Therefore, the ministers advised, the demigods, the saintly persons, the
cr<IFI
if'"' .. c. ::
('
('
i=w61'711 r:rt:
rr::
II
w.n:
II
sri-suka uviica
bahir-anta(l-pura-dviita(l
sarvii(l pilrvavad avrta(l
tato biila-dhvanim srutvii
grha-piilii(l samutthitii(l
sri-suka(l uviic a-Sri Sukadeva Gosviimi said;
bahi(l-anta(l-pura
biila-dhvanim
samutthitii(l
TRANSLATION
Sukadeva Gosviimi
inside and outside the house closed as before. Thereafter, the in-
Text2]
277
atrocious activities and Kamsa becomes repentant and falls at their feet.
Before the awakening of the watchmen and the others in the prison
house, many other things happened. :Kr1,1a was born and transferred to
the home of Yasodii in Gokula, the strong doors opened and again closed,
watchmen, however, could not understand all this. They awakened only
were just like dogs. At night the dogs in the street act like watchmen. If
one dog barks, many other dogs immediately follow it by barking. Al
though the street dogs are not appointed by anyone to act as watchmen,
they think they are responsible for protecting the neighborhood, and as
soon as someone unknown enters it, they all begin to bark. Both
Yogamiiyii and Mahiimiiyii act in all material activities
(prakrtett
tions of
tion afforded by the dogs and doglike guardians of this material world.
TEXT2
(.'
(.'
ij 1_uiijqe4 illt
m:qtfGHii:tite : !RftaJij
te tu tilr7J.am upavrajya
devakya garbha-janma tat
acakhyur bhoja-rajaya
yad udvignatt pratik{;ate
I
II II
Srimad-Bhagavatam
278
(the King);
devakya-of
Devaki;
upa
garbha
Karitsa, the ruler of the Bhoja dynasty, and submitted the news of
the birth of Devaki's child. Kamsa, who had awaited this news very
anxiously, immediately took action.
PURPORT
Karilsa was very anxiously waiting because of the prophecy that the
eighth child of Devaki would kill him. This time, naturally, he was
awake and waiting, and when the watchmen approached him, he
immediately took action to kill the child.
TEXT3
itfid-:1
Q\ffl4JO(ftf(1' stct : II
II
(King
Karilsa);
talpat-from
the
bed;
tur'{Wm-very
the
maternity
home;
agat-went;
tur{Ulm-without
delay;
the supreme time factor, which has taken birth to kill me!" Thus
Text4]
279
The word
Kamsa, Karhsa thought that this was the proper time to kill the child so
that he himself would be saved.
must take another body by the laws of nature. Not knowing this, they
unnecessarily waste their time in their occupation as watchdogs and do
not try to get the mercy of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. As it is
clearly said,
mm:
'Tufl
ij'ef Etl@IIOI fW.i ;at(ru II II
Srimad-Bhagavatam
280
aha-said;
bhrataram-her brother;
krpaa-helplessly;
devi
karuJnm-piteously; sati-the
TRANSLATION
Devaki helplessly,
piteously appealed
to Kamsa:
My
dear
brother, all good fortune unto you. Don't kill this girl. She will be
PURPORT
TEXTS
iffif! : qqlft! I
(;('1 II II
bahavo himsita bhrata/:t
si.Sava/:t pavakopama/:t
tvaya daiva-nismena
putrikaika pradiyatam
Text 5]
281
as
fire.
1.5.18)
Srimad-Bhagavatam
282
[Canto
10,
Ch. 4
Devaki knew very well that because the killing of her many children had
been ordained by destiny, Karhsa was not to be blamed. There was no
need to give good instructions to Karhsa.
Upadeso hi murkharpim
ij
J;n T !J+iT
d+t(m
+t;:a:lt41
II II
P;{f
aq@'tl+tl (0'1{}'1 1
mi IG\IM0:1l\91l
Text 8)
283
sri-suka uvaca
upaguhyatmajam evam
rudatya dina-dinavat
TRANSLATION
Sukadeva Gosvimi continued: Piteously embracing her daugh
ter and crying, Devaki begged Kamsa for the child, but he was so
cruel that he chastised her and forcibly snatched the child from
her hands.
PURPORT
Although Devaki was crying like a very poor woman, actually she was
not poor, and therefore the word used here is dinavat. She had already
given birth to KrJ;ta. Therefore, who could have been richer than she?
Even the demigods had come to offer prayers to Devaki, but she played
the part of a poor, piteously affi.icted woman because she wanted to save
the daughter of Yasoda.
TEXTS
., =t.(Uiql'3ft<t+u?ti : 1
"4Rs<tta::
tam grhitva carayor
jata-matram svasu/.l sutam
apothayac child-prlhe
svarthonmalita-sauhrda/.l
II II
284
Srimad-Bhagavatam
[Canto
10, Ch. 4
tense selfishness, Karitsa, who was sitting on his knees, grasped the
newborn child by the legs and tried to dash her against the surface
of a stone.
TEXT9
(1tf) t 1
i5n : II Q_, II
m (iflq
sa tad-dhastat samutpatya
sadyo devy ambaram gata
adrsyatanuja vwb
sayudhta-mahabhuja
sa-that female child; tat-hastat-from the hand of Kamsa; sam
utpatya-slipped upward; sadyab--immediately; devi-the form of a
demigoddess; ambaram-into the sky; gata-went;
adrsyata-was
with weapons.
PURPORT
Kamsa tried to dash the child downward against a piece of stone, but
since she was Yogamaya, the younger sister of Lord Vi1,1u, she slipped
upward and assumed the form of the goddess Durgii. The word anuja,
Text 11]
285
II II
:m+.t4lf<.tl14Jlf
l+.filfi4
fi
I
f<.t(+.tl(Ul4l": Mil:
:gq,,JI: a:4i1'41 IIII
o
divya-srag-ambaralepa
ratnabharar:w-bhita
dhanu/:1,-suleu-carmasi
sankha-cakra-gada-dhara
siddha-carar:w-gandharvair
apsara/:1,-kinnaroragai/:1,
upahrtoru-balibhi/:1,
stuyamanedam abravit
divya-srak-ambara-alepa-she then assumed the form of a demigod
dess, completely decorated with sandalwood pulp, flower garlands and a
nice dress;
upahrta-uru-balibhi/:1,-who
Srimad-Bhagavatam
286
enemy;
rna-do
not;
hirilsi}:t-kill;
krpar:tan-other
poor
children; vrtha-unnecessarily.
TRANSLATION
0 Karilsa, you fool, what will be the use of killing me? The
Supreme Personality of Godhead, who has been your enemy from
the very beginning and who will certainly kill you, has already
taken His birth somewhere else. Therefore, do not unnecessarily
kill other children.
TEXT 13
({
ill"I+4Piifi q;mll ( II II
iti prabya tam devi
maya bhagavatf bhuvi
bahu-ndma-niketeu
bahu-ndmd babhava ha
Text 14]
287
maya-Yogamaya;
bhagavati-possessing immense
as
Viirasi, and be
18.61).
entity's desire, Yogamaya, or Maya, the goddess Durga, gives him a par
ticular type of body, which is mentioned as yantra, a machine. But the
living entities who are promoted to the spiritual world do not return to
the prison house of a material body (tyaktva deham punar janma naiti
mam eti so 'rjuna). The words janma
na
: if(q: I
ms;{,,\l''
Srimad-Bhagavatam
288
tayabhihitam akan;tya
kamsa/:t parama-vismita/:t
devakim vasudevam ca
vimucya prarito 'bravit
taya -by
the
goddess
Durga;
abhihitam-the
words
spoken;
immediately;
prarita/:t -with
great
humility;
ab ravit-spoke as follows.
TRANSLATION
Kamsa was astonished because the goddess Durga had become the
daughter of Devaki. Since Devaki was a human being, how could the
goddess Durga become her daughter? This was one cause of his astonish
ment. Also, how is it that the eighth child of Devaki was a female? This
also astonished him. Asuras are generally devotees of mother Durga,
Text 16]
289
maya-by me;
vam-of you;
bata-indeed;
pap
am
indeed so sinful
that exactly like a man-eater [Rak!jasa] who eats his own child, I
have killed so many sons born of you.
PURPORT
ll'ffiIRtij : I
qifit liltW:4iilt :II II
sa tv aham tyakta-karuTJyas
tyakta-jfiiiti-suhrt khala/:t
kiin lokan vai gamyami
brahma-heva mrta/:t svasan
sa/:t-that person (Kamsa); tu-indeed; aham-1; tyakta-kiiruTJ
ya/:t-devoid of all mercy; tyakta-jfiiiti-suhrt-my relatives and friends
have been rejected by me; khalal;t-cruel; kiin lokiin-which planets;
<-
Srimad-Bhagavatam
290
not know to which planet I shall go, either after death or while
breathing.
TEXT 17
ct+\tqi Cf ;r tf - I
-nq: 46f.tCfll1. I I \911
daivam apy anrtam vakti
na martya eva kevalam
yad-viSrambhdd aham papa/:t
svasur nihatavan chiSun
daivam-providence;
api -also;
anrtam-lies;
vakti
- say;
na
lies. And I
am
TEXT 18
ma socatam mahd-bhdgav
atmajan sva-krtam bhuja/:t
Text 19]
291
jantavo na sadaikatra
daivadhinas tadasate
md
past);
maha-bhagau be
cause although he killed their ordinary children, the goddess Durgii. took
birth from them. Because Devaki bore Durgii.devi in her womb, Kamsa
praised both Devaki and her husband. Asuras are very devoted to the
goddess Durgii., Kii.li and so forth. Kamsa, therefore, truly astonished, ap
preciated the exalted position of his sister and brother-in-law. Durgii. is
certainly not under the laws of nature, because she herself is the con. troller of the laws of nature. Ordinary living beings, however, are con
trolled by these laws (prakrte kriyamdr:tani gur:tai karmdr:ti sarva5aM.
Consequently, none of us are allowed to live together for any long
period. By speaking in this way, Karilsa tried to pacify his sister and
brother-in-law.
TEXT 19
iftftf;{ttlttqtu 1
miT qiff6 \{:II
bhuvi bhaumani
bhatani
292
Srimad-Bhagavatam
TRANSLATION
In this world, we can see that pots, dolls and other products of
the earth appear, break and then disappear, mixing with the earth.
lated, but the living entities, like the earth itself, are unchanging
and never annihilated [na hanyate hanyamane sarire].
PURPORT
Although Kamsa is described as a demon, he had good knowledge of
the affairs of iitma-tattva, the truth of the self. Five thousand years ago,
there were kings like Kamsa, wno is described as an asura, but he was
better than modern politicians and diplomats, who have no knowledge
about iitma-tattva. As stated in the Vedas, asarigo hy ayam pural;,: the
spirit soul has no connection with the changes of the material body. The
body undergoes six changes-birth, growth, sustenance, by-products,
dwindling and then annihilation-but the soul undergoes no such
changes. Even after the annihilation of a particular bodily form, the
original source of the bodily elements does not change. The living entity
enjoys the material body, which appears and disappears, but the five ele
ments earth, water, fire, air and ether remain the same. The example
given here is that pots and dolls are produced from the earth, and when
broken or destroyed they mingle with their original ingredients. In any
case, the source of supply remains the same.
As already discussed, the body is made according to the desires of the
soul. The soul desires, and thus the body is formed. "Kr!?I).a therefore says
in Bhagavad-gitii
(18.61):
293
Text 20]
iSvarab, sarva-bhiltdndm
hrd-dese rjuna tithati
bhramayan sarva-bhiltani
yantrarwJ,hani mayaya
'
Paramatma, nor the individual soul changes its original, spiritual iden
tity. The dtmd does not undergo birth, death or changes like the body.
Therefore a Vedic aphorism says, asarigo hy ayam purU$ab,: although the
soul is conditioned within this material world, he has no connections with
the changes of the material body.
TEXT 20
ll.1
'L, ..1
31l<:+tAqtf : )I
M lloll
yathanevam-vido bhedo
yata atma-viparyayab,
deha-yoga-viyogau ca
sarilsrtir na nivartate
yatha-as; an-evam-vidab,-of a person who has no knowledge
(about dtma-tattva and the steadiness of the dtmd in his own identity,
despite the changes of the body); bhedab,-the idea of difference be
tween body and self; yatab,-because of which; dtma-viparyayab,-the
foolish understanding that one is the body; deha-yoga-viyogau ca-and
this
causes
connections
and
separations
among
different
bodies;
Srimad-Bhigavatam
294
as
(1.2.6):
vice of the Lord (yato bhaktir adhoaje), without impediment and with
death, old age and disease, but one who is situated in spiritual life (yato
bhaktir adhoaje) has no birth, no death, no old age and no disease. One
may argue that we may see a person who is spiritually engaged twenty
four hours a day but is still suffering from disease. In fact, however, he
is neither suffering nor diseased; otherwise he could not be engaged
twenty-four hours a day in spiritual activities. The example may be
given in this connection that sometimes dirty foam or garbage is seen
tion of the water. But one who goes to the Ganges does not mind the foam
and dirty things floating in the water. With his hand, he pushes away
such nasty things, bathes in the Ganges and gains the beneficial results.
Therefore, one who is situated in the spiritual status of life is unaffected
by foam and garbage-or any superficial dirty things. This is confirmed
by Srila Rupa Gosvami:
Text 21]
295
"A person acting in the service of I?I,la with his body, mind and words
(Bhakti
life. Birth, death, old age and disease do not affect him. According to the
Hari-bhakti-vilasa, therefore, after the disappearance of an acarya, his
body is never burnt to ashes, for it is a spiritual body. The spiritual body
is always unaffected by material conditions.
TEXT 21
ijfwl nqrfa:ijt'1fq 1
'""+41,..,..,.,...,il-:=r'if tRJ: : mr: II II
tasmiid bhadre sva-tanayan
maya vyapaditan api
manu.Soca yata/:t sarva/:t
sva-krtarh vindate 'va5a/:t
tas mat-therefore;
rna
TRANSLATION
My dear sister Devaki, all good fortune unto you. Everyone
suffers and enjoys the results of his own work under the control of
providence. Therefore, although your sons have unfortunately
been killed by me, please do not lament for them.
PURPORT
(5.54):
296
Srimad-Bhagavatam
[Canto
I 0,
Ch. 4
ttl:{ffl t{tl@l+tlwf St I
ijiG\+tlrilijl II
yavad dhato 'smi hantasmity atmanam manyate 'sva-drk
tavat tad-abhimany ajfio
badhya-badhakatam iyat
yavat-as long as; hata asmi-1 am now being killed (by others);
hanta asmi-1 am the killer (of others); iti-thus; atmanam-own self;
manyate-he considers; a-sva-drk-one who has not seen himself
(because of the darkness of the bodily conception of life); tavat-for that
long; tat-abhimani-regarding himself as the killed or the killer;
ajfia-a foolish person; badhya-badhakatam-the worldly transaction
of being obliged to execute some responsibility; iyat-continues.
Text 23]
297
TRANSLATION
In the bodily conception of life, one remains in darkness, with
out self-realization, thinking, "I
killed my enemies." As long
as
am
Bhagavad-gita (18.17):
{I; ::rn:fH I
WI: m:iww;: II
amadhvam mama dauratmyam
sadhavo dina-vatsala/:t
298
Srimad-Bhagavatam
TRANSLATION
Kamsa begged, "My dear sister and brother-in-law, please be
Kamsa fell at the feet of Vasudeva and Devaki, his eyes full of tears
of regret.
PURPORT
Although Kamsa had spoken very nicely on the subject of real knowl
edge, his past deeds were abominable and atrocious, and therefore he
further begged forgiveness from his sister and brother-in-law by falling
at their feet and admitting that he was a most sinful person.
TEXT 24
f;tt:Siif : Wm I
....
:q
a:4lhue ll';('dll
kanyakd-gira-in
the
Text 25]
299
TEXT 25
mt m 1
'f'l ( II '-\II
: 'lsEtfl@
lii:JY:U.UW
bhrdtu samanutaptasya
4nta-ra,4 ca devakf
vyasrjad vasudeva ca
prahasya tam uv4ca ha
bhr4tu -toward her brother Kamsa; samanutaptasya -because of
his being regretful; 4nta- ro,4 -was relieved of anger; ca-also;
300
Srimad-Bhagavatam
Because the Lord had already taken birth, just like a human child, and
was in the safe custody of Yasodii, everything was happening according to
plan, and there was no need to continue their ill feeling toward Karhsa.
Thus they accepted Karhsa's words.
TEXT 26
;:p.f( a,..n 1
3lm: ((lqRt r:
evam etan maha-bhaga
yatha vadasi dehinam
ajiidna-prabhavaham-dhib,
sva-pareti bhida yatab,
maha-bhaga-0
dehinam
about living entities (accepting material bodies); ajfiana-prabhava-by
evam-yes, this is right; etat-what you have said;
does one accept the material body and bodily ego. What you have
301
Text 27]
dog," "I am a cat," or, when the ignorance is still further advanced, "I
am God." Unless one is fully self-realized, one's life of ignorance will
continue.
TEXT 27
lfi6:'t+t4
"'
"'
if";Jttl :
11\911
soka-hara-bhaya-dvea
lobha-moha-madanvita/:t
mitho ghnantam na pa5yanti
bhavair bhavam prthag-drsa/:t
soka-lamentation; hara-jubilation; bhaya-fear; dvea-envy;
lobha-gteed;
with;
moha-illusion;
mitha/:t-one
another;
mada-madness;
anvita/:t-endowed
bhavai/:t-because
of
such
na
differentiation;
is in distress, this is due to his own past misdeeds, which are now
302
Srlmad-Bhigavatam
Godhead these are only very slight. Kanndr;.i nirdahati kintu ca bhakti
bh4jtlm (Brahma-samhittl55
. 4). When a devotee under the protection of
past deeds, he passes through only a little misery by the grace of the
sometime in the past, he agrees to suffer and tolerate such miseries, and
he depends fully on the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Thus he is
bhagavad-darsantld yasya
virodhtld darsanarh prthak
prthag-drti sa vijneyo
na tu sad-bheda-darsana
TEXT 28
:1
ctcih4ijIRilqMlffl 1111
srf-suka uvtlca
karhsa evarh prasanntlbhytlm
viSuddham pratibita
devakf-vasudevtlbhytlm
anujMto 'viSad grham
sn-suka uvtlca-Sri Sukadeva GosvAmi said; karhsa-King Karhsa;
evam-thus; prasanntlbhytlm-who were very much appeased; viSud
dham-in purity; pratibhita-being answered; devakf-vasudeva
bhyam-by Devaki and Vasudeva; anujMta-taking permission;
aviSat-entered; grham-his own palace.
Text 29]
303
TRANSLATION
Sukadeva Gosvimi continued: Thus having been addressed in
TEXT 29
........:.
formed them of all that had been spoken by Yogamaya [who had
revealed that He who was to slay Kamsa had already been born
somewhere else].
PURPORT
The Vedic scripture Car:uJ,i describes maya, the energy of the Supreme
Lord, as nidra: durga devi sarva-bhateu nidra-ruper;ta samasthita. The
energy of Yogamaya and Mahamaya keeps the living entities sleeping in
this material world in the great darkness of ignorance. Yogamaya, the
goddess Durga, kept Karhsa in darkness about :Q.a's birth and misled
him to believe that his enemy :Q.a had been born elsewhere. :Q.a was
born the son of Devaki, but according to the Lord's original plan, as
304
Srimad-Bhagavatam
krta-amar$att-who
were
envious;
daiteyatt-the
were enemies of the demigods and were not very expert in their
dealings, advised Karilsa as follows.
PURPORT
There are two different types of men-the asuras and the suras.
305
Text 32]
Those who are devotees of Lord Vit;tu, t;ta, are suras, or devas,
whereas those who are opposed to the devotees are called asuras. Devo
tees are expert in all transactions (yasyasti bhaktir bhagavaty akiiicana
sarvair gur:wis tatra samasate sura). Therefore they are called kovida,
which means "expert." Asuras, however, although superficially showing
expertise in passionate activities, are actually all fools. They are neither
sober nor expert. Whatever they do is imperfect. Moghasa mogha
karmar:w.
Bhagavad-gita
such persons who advised Kamsa because they were his chief friends and
ministers.
TEXT 31
OU'ltN11R!!
o:.T
'"'
.nil'{
1 'til (Qj 1'415'-1
tf 1'{1'(1 1 II
evam cet tarhi bhojendra
pura-grama-vrajadi.u
anirdaSan nirdaSams ca
hani.yamo 'dya vai siSan
adya-beginning
from
today;
vai-indeed;
siSun-all
such
children.
TRANSLATION
If this is so, 0 King of the Bhoja dynasty, beginning today we
shall kill all the children born in all the villages, towns and pastur
ing grounds within the past ten days or slightly more.
TEXT 32
n. lift:
anr.iLs1 IISJ:i
ftqf';ij ::1
'"' s
l!f-!JEI--4 It II
306
Srimad-Bhagavatam
asyatas te sara-vratair
hanyamanaf!, samantataf!,
jijivi$ava utsrjya
palayana-pard yayuf!,
asyatafl,-pierced by your discharged arrows; te-your; sara-vra
taif!,-by the multitude of arrows; hanyamanaf!,-being killed; saman
tataf!,-here and there; jijivi$avaf!,-aspiring to live; utsrjya-giving up
the battlefield; palayana-paraf!,-intent on escaping; yayuf!,-they fled
(the fighting).
TRANSLATION
While being pierced by your arrows, which you discharged on
escaping.
Text 35]
307
TEXT 34
'":I
u=:r-.xt: ii'H :IIII
kecit prdfijalayo dfnd
nyasta-sastrd divaukasa
mukta-kaccha-sikhd kecid
bhftd sma iti vddina
kecit-some of them; prdfija ul.ya -folded their hands just to please
you; d rnc1 -very poor; nyasta-sastrc1 -being bereft of all weapons;
TRANSLATION
Defeated and bereft of all weapons, some of the demigods gave
up fighting and praised you with folded hands, and some of them,
appearing before you with loosened garments and hair, said, "0
lord, we are very much afraid of you."
TEXT 35
f.lf{6f'i.l
an=mlij'ffif4*RC41'i llttmf!J'olt(!: II II
na tvam vismrta-sastrastrdn
virathdn bhaya-samvrtdn
hamsy anyasakta-vimukhdn
bhagna-cdpdn ayudhyata
na-not;
tvam-Your Majesty;
vismrta-sastra-astrdn-those who
308
Srimad-Bhagavatam
something other than fighting, or when their bows are broken and
they have thus lost the ability to fight, Your Majesty does not kill
them.
PURPORT
Text 37]
309
yogis. As for Lord Siva, he has gone to the forest. And as for Lord
PURPORT
Karhsa's ministers told Karhsa t.!J.at all the exalted demigods had fled in
fear of him. One had gone to the forest, one to the core of the heart, and
one to engage in tapasya. "Thus you can be free from all fear of the
demigods," they said. "Just prepare to fight."
TEXT 37
n :nqq.-lTT ;r.:
ijij8fl{'ti5_,*..,-<il'1,..;;.;. II II
tathapi devli/:t slipatnylin
nopeyli iti manmahe
tatas tan-milla-khanane
niyurilcyvasmlin anuvratlin
310
Srimad-Bhagavatam
you.
TRANSLATION
Nonetheless, because of their enmity, our opinion is that the
demigods should not be neglected. Therefore, to uproot them
completely, engage us in fighting with them, for we are ready to
follow you.
PURPORT
7.t11TlPits:f ) ;:qa:f?tim1tN'
qr..-un
ft'l it " II<; II
yathdmayo 'nge samupeito nrbhir
na sakyate r04ha-padaS cikitsitum
yathendriya-grama upeitas tatha
ripur mahan baddha-balo na calyate
yatha-as; amaya-a disease; arige-in the body; samupeita
Text 39]
control later,
an
311
becomes insurmountable.
TEXT 39
"
"
"'l'
C'
1l rca:::u.., : Jq;:J: 1
....,_ Sllq1
.... H aJOTT: 11<;11
mfill
,......
Srimad-Bhagavatam
312
II
brahmary,as;
ing sacrifices and austerities, and the cows that supply milk, from
TEXT 41
Am
l ijq: : 14: I
l :q ll'dZII
rrtilf
;aT
Text 41]
313
sacrifices;
ViQU.
TRANSLATION
The briihmat:J.as, the cows, Vedic knowledge, austerity, truthful
ness, control of the mind and senses, faith, mercy, tolerance and
sacrifice are the different parts of the body of Lord V it;J.u, and they
are the paraphernalia for a godly civilization.
PURPORT
namo brahmaJya-devaya
go-brahmaJa-hitaya ca
jagad-dhitaya krlJdya
govindaya namo nama/;
When Qa comes to establish real perfection in the social order, He
personally gives
Srimad-Bhiigavatam
314
[Canto I 0, Ch. 4
sa hi sarva-suradhyao
hy asura-dvU;l guha-saya/:t
sesvara/:t sa-catur-mukha/:t
sa/:t-He
(Lord ViQu);
hi-indeed;
sarva-sura-adhyaa/:t-the
heart;
devata/:t-the
demigods, including Lord Siva and Lord Brahmi, exist under His
Text 43]
315
PURPORT
The demigods and the Vai"J.lavas especially are part and parcel of the
Supreme Lord, ViJ.lu, because they are always obedient to His orders
(om tad vr:w paramam padam sada pa.Syanti surayaM. The demoniac
couraging karmis, jiianis and yogis, because if one must liberate oneself
1;1
.
8</T'i!f
qfll'"'lt: : ij+l{; :
I
;f mT hRJNIItdl: 11\lll
sri-suka uvaca
evarh durmantribhi kamsa
saha sammantrya durmati
brahma-hirhsam hitam mene
kala-pasavrto 'sura
sri-suka uvaca-Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said; evam-in this way;
good
brahmar;as;
intelligence;
brahma-hirhsclm-persecution
mene-accepted;
of
the
kala-pasa
TRANSLATION
Sukadeva Gosvimi continued: Thus, having considered the in
structions of his bad ministers, Kamsa, who was bound by the laws
316
Srimad-Bhagavatam
bhufijiiye
ijf.-a: m 1
'NU'l 1'\ ll'd'dll
sandiSya siidhu-lokasya
kadane kadana-priyiin
kiima-rapa-dhariin diu
diinaviin grham iiviSat
sandiSya-after giving permission; siidhu-lokasya-of the saintly
persons; kadane-in persecution; kadana-priyiin-to the demons, who
Text 45]
317
ij
<1 : I
f.riuua.1r<w:: 1111
:S4t<1
te vai raja-prakrtayas
tamasa mik;lha-cetasa
satam vidveam dcerur
arad agata-mrtyava
te-all the asuric ministers; vai-indeed; raja-prakrtaya-sur
charged with the mode of passion; tamasd-overwhelmed by the mode
of ignorance; mik;lha-cetasa-foolish persons; satam-of saintly per
sons;
vidveam-persecution;
dceru-executed;
drat agata-mrtya
(2.13):
Srimad-Bhagavatam
318
tatha dehantara-praptir
dhiras tatra
muhyati
na
"As the embodied soul continually passes, in this body, from boyhood to
youth to old age, the soul similarly passes into another body at death. The
self-realized soul is not bewildered by such a change." Irresponsible per
sons, surcharged with passion and ignorance, foolishly do things that are
not to be done (nanam pramattatt kurute vikarma). But one should know
the results of irresponsible actions, as explained in the next verse.
TEXT 46
: ftf W <?;l ef :q I
&r W:rif fOr 4iG:Mttift:
ayutt sriyarh yao dharmam
lokan asa eva ca
hanti sreyarhsi sarvai
purhso mahad-atikramatt
ayutt -the
duration
of
life;
sriyam -beauty;
ya5att -fame;
sarvai -all;
TRANSLATION
My dear King, when a man persecutes great souls, all his
Srimad-Bhagavatam,
CHAPTER FIVE
The Meeting of
Nanda Maharaja and Vasudeva
As described in this chapter, Nanda Maharaja very gorgeously performed
the birth ceremony for his newborn child. Then he went to Kamsa to pay
taxes due and met his intimate friend Vasudeva.
There was great jubilation all over V:rndavana due to K:ra's birth.
Everyone was overwhelmed with joy. Therefore the King of Vraja,
Maharaja Nanda, wanted to perform the birth ceremony for his child,
and this he did. During this great festival, Nanda Maharaja gave in
charity to all present whatever they desired. After the festival, Nanda
Maharaja put the cowherd men in charge of protecting Gokula, and then
he went to Mathura to pay official taxes to Kamsa. In Mathura, Nanda
Maharaja met Vasudeva. Nanda Maharaja and Vasudeva were brothers,
and Vasudeva praised Nanda Maharaja's good fortune because he knew
that K:ra had accepted Nanda Maharaja as His father. When Vasudeva
inquired from Nanda Maharaja about the welfare of the child, Nanda
Maharaja informed him all about V:rndavana, and Vasudeva was very
much satisfied by this, although he expressed his grief because Devaki's
many children had been killed by Kamsa. Nanda Maharaja consoled
Vasudeva by saying that everything happens according to destiny and
that one who knows this is not aggrieved. Expecting many disturbances
in Gokula, Vasudeva then advised Nanda Maharaja not to wait in
Mathura, but to return to V:rndavana as soon as possible. Thus Nanda
Maharaja took leave of Vasudeva and returned to V:rndavana with the
other cowherd men on their bullock carts.
TEXTS 1-2
+4(1+4wtl: I
3Tif{ a:li Rn M@,t: II
319
II
320
Srimad-Bhigavatam
sri-suka uvaca
vacayitva svastyayanam
jata-karmatmajasya vai
pitf-devarcanam tatha
nanimous, and when Lord Sri 111,1a appeared as his son, he was
overwhelmed by jubilation. Therefore, after bathing and purify
have the Vedic birth ceremony celebrated for his newborn child
Text3]
The Meeting
of
321
PURPORT
Srila Visvanatha Cakravarti 'fhakura has discussed the significance of
the words
nandas tu. The word tu, he says, is not used \O fulfill the sen
tu the sentence is complete. Therefore the word tu
connecting the child and the placenta, is cut. However, since Qa was
siistras that Qa ac
tually took birth as the son of Yasoda before the birth of Yogamaya, who
is therefore described as the Lord's younger sister. Even though there
may be doubts about the cutting of the umbilical cord, and even though
it is possible that this was not done, when the Supreme Personality of
Godhead appears, such events are regarded as factual. K:rQa appeared as
karayam iisa vidhivat. Being overwhelmed with jubilation over the birth
of his son, Nanda Maharaja did not see whether the cord was cut or not.
TEXT3
m+1t:1
$ m(l'tdl111
II
Srimad-Bhagavatam
322
with gold.
TRANSLATION
Nanda Maharaja gave two million cows, completely decorated
them seven hills of grain, covered with jewels and with cloth deco'
rated with golden embroidery.
kalena snana-saucabhyam
samskarais tapasejyaya
sudhyanti danai santtya
dravyar:ty atmatma-vidyaya
kalena-by due course of time (the land and other material things be
come purified); snana-saucabhyam-by bathing (the body becomes
purified)
and
by
sarilskarai-by
cleansing
purificatory
(unclean
processes
things
become
purified);
(birth
becomes
purified);
brahmar:ws
become
purified);
sudhyanti-become
purified;
Text 5]
323
TRANSLATION
These are sastric injunctions concerning how one can purify every
thing according to Vedic civilization. Unless purified, anything we use
will infect us with contamination. In India five thousand years ago, even
in the villages such as that of Nanda Maharaja, people knew how to
purify things, and thus they enjoyed even material life without
contamination.
TEXTS
I
II'-\ II
saummigalya-giro vipra/:t
siiJa-magadha-vandina/:t
gayakaS ca jagur nedur
bheryo dundubhayo muhu/:t
saumarigalya-gira/:t-whose chanting of mantras and hymns purified
the environment by their vibration; vipra/:t - the brahma7Jas; s ata - ex
perts in reciting all the histories; magadha-experts in reciting the
histories of special royal families;
vandina/:t-general
professional
Srimad-Bhiigavatam
324
''"'
vraja sammma-samsikta
dvarajira-grhantara
citra-dhvaja-pataka-srak
caila-pallava-torary,ai
vraja-the land occupied by Nanda Maharaja; sammrta-very
nicely cleaned; samsikta-very nicely washed; dvdra-all the doors or
entrances;
ajira-courtyards;
thing within the rooms of the houses were perfectly swept and
washed with water.
TEXT7
....
f(lerl
T tf
'"'
'"'
rn:del1ijt: I
AA&t()(J'il;r:
gavo vra vatsatara
haridra-taila-ril$ita
II
\9
II
Text 8]
325
vicitra-dhatu-barhasrag
vastra-kaiicana-malinabgavab--the cows; vr$ab--the bulls; vatsataab--the calves; hari
dra-with a mixture of turmeric; taila-and oil; TU$itab--their entire
bodies smeared; vicitra-decorated varieties of; dhatu-colored min
erals;
barha-srak-peacock-feather
garlands;
vastra-cloths;
kaii
(18.44),
kr$i-go-rak$ya-vaJJ,ijyam
vaiSya-karma-svabhavajam:
"Farming, cow protection and trade are the qualities of work for the
vaiSyas." Nanda Maharaja belonged to the vaiSya community, the
agriculturalist community. How to protect the cows and how rich this
community was are explained in these verses. We can hardly imagine
that cows, bulls and calves could be cared for so nicely and decorated so
well with cloths and valuable golden ornaments. How happy they were.
As
described
elsewhere
in
the
Bhagavatam,
during
Maharaja
Yudhithira's time the cows were so happy that they used to muddy the
pasturing ground with milk. This is Indian civilization. Yet in the same
place, India, Bharatavara, how much people are suffering by giving up
the Vedic way of life and not understanding the teachings of Bhagavad
gitii.
TEXTS
"
'"' c.
;mNI(UI=>iltUli'1<:tt:
I
ilm: Tlfl u ;n;nq'l'n'tt
' wtq""o
l ""
t
l H 11
'"'
'"'
.......
11
326
Srimad-Bhigavatam
maharha-vastrabhara
kaiicukor;r,a-bhi4ita/:t
gopa/:t samayay a rajan
nanopayana-paya/:t
mahd-arha-extremely valuable; vastra-abhara-with garments
and ornaments; kaiicuka-by a particular type of garment used in
V:rndavana;
yaodaya/:t sutodbhavam
atmanam bhi4ayam cakrur
vastrakalpafijanadibhi/:t
327
hearing;
akaya-after
mudita-became
very
glad;
i".tti\Ni%Q(cNtn
'"'
'tiI+1'J
: R1)4'.41: II II
o
nava-kurikuma-kinjalka
mukha-parikaja-bhataya
balibhis tvaritam jagmu
prthu-sror:tya5 calat-kuca
nava-kurikuma-kinjalka-with saffron and newly grown kurikuma
flower; mukha-parikaja-bhataya-exhibiting an extraordinary beauty
in their lotuslike faces; balibh*-with presentations in their hands;
tvaritam-very quickly;
jagmu-went
(to
328
Srimad-Bhagavatam
PURPORT
The cowherd men and women in the villages lived a very natural life,
and the women developed a natural feminine beauty, with full hips and
breasts. Because women in modern civilization do not live naturally,
their hips and breasts do not develop this natural fullness. Because of ar
tificial living, women have lost their natural beauty, although they claim
to be independent and advanced in material civilization. This description
of the village women gives a clear example of the contrast between
natural life and the artificial life of a condemned society, such as that of
the Western countries, where topless, bottomless beauty may be easily
purchased in clubs and shops and for public advertisements. The word
balibhi indicates that the women were carrying gold coins, jeweled
necklaces, nice cloths, newly grown grass, sandalwood pulp, flower gar
lands and similar offerings on plates made of gold. Such offerings are
called bali. The words tvaritam jagmu indicate how happy the village
women were to understand that mother Yasodii had given birth to a won
derful child known as K:rJ:.la.
TEXT 11
tTlQ.J: Wl!'if'ltWt&ifil!fi
fSflkHI: qN (CCI41@t'Ji: I
ffir.totttittU:
IIII
gopya sumrta-mar;ti-kur;tc},ala-n4ka-kar:tthya5
citrambarii pathi sikha-cyuta-malya-varii
nandiilayam sa-valaya vrajatir virejur
vyalola-kur;tc},ala-payodhara-hara-sobhii
gopya-the gopis; su-m ma-very dazzling; mar;t i- made of jewels;
kur;tc},ala-wearing earrings; n4ka-kar:tthya-and having little keys
and lockets hanging from their necks; citra-ambarii-dressed with
varieties of colored embroidery; pathi-on their way to Yasodiimayi's
house; sikha-cyuta-fell from their hair; miilya-varii-a shower of
329
The description of the gopis, who were going to the house of Maharaja
iinanda-cinmaya-rasa-pratibhavitabhis
(5.37)
cintiimar:ti-prakara-sadmasu kalpa-vra
laavrteu surabhir abhipalayantam
lami-sahasra-sata-sambhrama-sevyamiinaril
govindam iidi-purU!}aril tam aham bhajiimi
(5.29)
!?I).a is always worshiped by the gopis wherever He goes. Therefore
!?I).a is so vividly described in Srimad-Bhagavatam. Sri Caitanya Maha
prabhu has also described K:r!?Q.a in this way: ramyii kiicid upiisand
Srimad-Bhiigavatam
330
: 311'11 1
d(ltai: fs: 1111
ta asa prayuiijanas
ciraril pahiti balake
haridra-curtta-tailadbhi
siiicantyo 'janam ujjagu
ta-all the women, the wives and daughters of the cowherd men;
asa-blessings; prayuiijana-offering; ciram-for a long time;
pahi-may You become the King of Vraja and maintain all its inhabi
tants; iti-thus; balake-unto the newborn child; haridra-curr:w
powder of turmeric; taila-adbhi-mixed with oil; siiicantya-sprin
kling; ajanam-the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is unborn;
ujjagu-offered prayers.
TRANSLATION
Offering blessings to the newborn child, l}a, the wives and
daughters of the cowherd men said, "May You become the King of
Vraja and long maintain all its inhabitants." They sprinkled a mix
ture of turmeric powder, oil and water upon the birthless Supreme
Lord and offered their prayers.
TEXT 13
NR1:sufU1
Ft
31
uR:"'IfUI 'litffl% 1
t4i1fUItt 1111
avadyanta vicitrar;ti
vaditrar;ti mahotsave
331
TRANSLATION
Now that the all-pervading, unlimited Lord :KfI].a, the master of
the cosmic manifestation, had arrived within the estate of Mahirija
Nanda, various types of musical instruments resounded to cele
brate the great festival.
PURPORT
The Lord says in Bhagavad-gita
(4. 7):
TEXT 14
::1
3llf.- f.\JOq;ffl00 : II \lll
Srimad-Bhigavatam
332
dadhi-ira-ghrtambubhi}:t
asiiicanto vilimpanto
navanitaiS ca ciipu}:t
gopa/:t-the cowherd men; parasparam-on one another; hrtii/:t
being so pleased; dadhi-with curd; ira-with condensed milk; ghrta
milk, butter and water. They threw butter on one another and
PURPORT
From this statement we can understand that five thousand years ago
not only was there enough milk, butter and curd to eat, drink and cook
with, but when there was a festival it would be thrown about without
restriction. There was no limit to how extensively milk, butter, curd and
other such products were used in human society. Everyone had an ample
stock of milk, and by using it in many varied milk preparations, people
would keep good health in natural ways and thus enjoy life in K:r!?Q.a
consciOusness.
TEXTS 15-16
tmJTS'(I(4ll I
'tTrr P4o:.fN'JftRif: II
: lq({lc:u<:41 Rld't'{.jj I
tOil(I( @(\Itt :q II II
4(1{1
333
siiJa-magadha-vandibhyo
ye 'nye vidyopajivina/:l
tais tai/:l kamair adinatma
yathocitam apujayat
vi$1Jor aradhanarthaya
sva-putrasyodayaya ca
nanda/:r.-Maharaja Nanda; maha-mana/:l-who among the cowherd
men was the greatest of all upright persons; tebhya/:l-unto the cowherd
men; vdsa/:r.-clothing; almikdra-ornaments; go-dhanam-and cows;
suta-magadha-vandibhya/:l-unto the sutas (the professional reciters of
the old histories), the magadhas (the professional reciters of the histories
of royal dynasties) and the vandis (general singers of prayers); ye
anye-as well as others; vidya-upajivina/:l-who were continuing their
livelihood on the basis of educational qualifications; tai/:l tai/:r.-with
whatever; kdmai/:r.-improvements of desire; adina-dtmd-Maharaja
Nanda, who was so magnanimous; yatha-ucitam-as was suitable;
apujayat-worshiped
them
or
satisfied
them;
vi$1JO/:l
aradhana
[Canto
Srimad-Bhagavatam
334
10,
Ch.
11.19.21).
The Lord
3.8.9).
Lord ViJ,lU, the Supreme Lord. The uncivilized man or materialistic per
son, however, does not know this aim of life. Na te vidu/:t svartha-gatim
hi vum (Bhag.
(bahir-artha-manina/:t) is the
satas. Thus, in a roundabout way, ultimately it was Lord ViJ,lu who was
to be satisfied.
TEXT 17
divya-beautiful;
335
TRANSLATION
The most fortunate Rohii, the mother of Baladeva, was
honored by Nanda Maharaja and Ya8oda, and thus she also dressed
gorgeously and decorated herself with a necklace, a garland and
other ornaments. She was busy wandering here and there to
receive the women who were guests at the festival.
PURPORT
Rohii, another wife of Vasudeva's, was also kept under the care of
Nanda Maharaja with her son Baladeva. Because her husband was im
prisoned by Karhsa, she was not very happy, but on the occasion of
Kra-janmatami, Nandotsava, when Nanda Maharaja gave dresses and
ornaments to others, he also gave gorgeous garments and ornaments to
Rohii so that she could take part in the festival. Thus she also was busy
receiving the women who were guests. Because of her good fortune in
being able to raise Kra and Balarama together, she is described as
:19{1
Rm
lij!ll{q 1111
ml
(Maharaja Parikit).
Srimad-Bhagavatam
336
TRANSLATION
appearance there, it became the place for the pastimes of the god
dess of fortune.
PURPORT
(5.29),
lami-sahasra-sata-sam
iidi-puarh
tam
aharh
bhajiimi.
very soon. Nanda Maharaja's abode was already opulent, and since K:r!?J.la
F{ ill i(ij: I
: ttl tr.t II
gopiin gokula-raiiyiirh
nirupya mathuriirh gata/:t
nanda/:t karhsasya viirikyarh
kararh datum kurudvaha
gopiin-the cowherd men; gokula-raiiyiim-in gtvmg protection
gata/:t-went;
nanda/:t-Nanda
Maharaja;
karhsasya-of
dynasty.
TRANSLATION
Sukadeva
Gosvami
continued:
Thereafter,
my
dear
King
337
pointed the local cowherd men to protect Gokula and then went to
Mathura to pay the yearly taxes to King Kamsa.
PURPORT
Because the killing of babies was going on and had already become
known, Nanda Maharaja was very much afraid for his newborn child.
Thus he appointed the local cowherd men to protect his home and child.
He wanted to go immediately to Mathura to pay the taxes due and also to
offer some presentation for the sake of his newborn son. For the protec
tion of the child, he had worshiped various demigods and forefathers and
given charity to everyone's satisfaction. Similarly, Nanda Maharaja
wanted not only to pay Karilsa the yearly taxes but also to offer some pre
sentation so that Karilsa too would be satisfied. His only concern was how
to protect his transcendental child, l(r1,1a.
TEXT 20
q ;r+tll
u 'EI+tl"i:4
"'
II o II
vasudeva uparutya
bhriitaram nandam agatam
jfiatvii datta-karam riijfie
yayau tad-avamocanam
vasudevab,-Vasudeva; uparutya-when he heard; bhriitaram-that
his dear friend and brother; nandam-Nanda Maharaja; agatam -had
come to Mathura; jfiatva-when he learned; datta-karam-and had
already paid the taxes; riijfie-unto the King; yayau -he went; tat
avamocanam-to the residential quarters of Nanda Maharaja.
TRANSLATION
When Vasudeva heard that Nanda Maharaja, his very dear friend
and brother, had come to Mathura and already paid the taxes to
Kamsa, he went to Nanda Maharaja's residence.
Srimad-Bhagavatam
338
PURPORT
Vasudeva's father, Siirasena, married a vaiSya girl, and from her Nanda
Kr!?:Q.a tends cows and therefore carries a flute in His hand. Thus the two
brothers represent kr$i-raya and go-raya.
TEXT 21
.
.......
.....
,.....
qt ij" : tfiOII411 I
!fur: fSrtijJf +trY 4@: II II
ij
uttha
339
TEXT 22
having
been
so
dearly
welcomed;
sukham
;mr:
f;{f*'
w;fhrsr ij
1111
bhrata-0
my dear brother;
340
Srimad-Bhagavatam
TRANSLATION
My dear brother Nanda Maharaja, at an advanced age you had no
son at all and were hopeless of having one. Therefore, that you
now have a son is a sign of great fortune.
PURPORT
as
min
in this
TRANSLATION
It is also by good fortune that I
am
341
one is present in this world, to meet with intimate friends and dear
relatives in this material world is extremely difficult.
PURPORT
Vasudeva had been imprisoned by Karhsa, and therefore, although
present in Mathura, he was unable to see Nanda Maharaja for many
years. Therefore when they met again, Vasudeva considered this meeting
to be another birth.
TEXT 25
m FSP:tqR{: .
on;u;ti M
naikatra priya-sariwiisa/:t
suhrdam citra-karma'fJdm
oghena vyahyamananiim
plavanam srotaso yatha
na-not; ekatra-in one place; priya-samviisa/:t-living togethe
, r with
dear friends and relatives; suhrdam-of friends; citra-karma'fJdm-of
all of us who have had varieties of reactions to our past karma; oghena
by the force; vyahyamananam-carried away; plavanam-of sticks and
other objects floating in the water; srotasa/:t-of the waves; yatha-as.
TRANSLATION
Many planks and sticks, unable to stay together, are carried away
by the force of a river's waves. Similarly, although we are in
timately related with friends and family members, we are unable to
stay together because of our varied past deeds and the waves of
time.
PURPORT
Vasudeva was lamenting because he and Nanda Maharaja could not
live together. Yet how could they live together? Vasudeva warns that all
of us, even if intimately related, are carried away by the waves of time
according to the results of past karma.
Srimad-Bhigavatam
342
TEXT 26
'(!0141 I
m:;f : II
kaccit paavyam nirujam
bhary-ambu-troa-virudham
brhad vanam tad adhuna
yatrasse tvam suhrd-vrtaft
kaccit-whether; paavyam-protection of the cows; nirujam-with
out difficulties or disease; bhari-sufficient; ambu-water; tr-grass;
virudham-plants; brhat vanam-the great forest; tat-all these ar
rangements are there; adhuna-now; yatra-where; asse-are living;
tvam-you; suhrt-vrtaft-surrounded by friends.
TRANSLATION
My dear friend Nanda Maharaja, in the place where you are liv
ing with your friends, is the forest favorable for the animals, the
For human happiness, one must care for the animals, especially the
cows. Vasudeva therefore inquired whether there was a good arrange
ment for the animals where Nanda Maharaja lived. For the proper pur
suit of human happiness, there must be arrangements for the protection
of cows. This means that there must be forests and adequate pasturing
grounds full of grass and water. If the animals are happy, there will be
an ample supply of milk, from which human beings will benefit by
deriving many milk products with which to live happily. As enjoined
in Bhagavad-gita
(18.44),
kr#-go-raya-va"(tijyam vaiSya-kanna-sva
343
('
wr:
"
'Efil"41"''51' +fqlJ, 1
......
bhriitar
mama
+rtf 111
f"'....
+r{f:
II
suta/:t kaccin
ft.n.G:r ""
l'."'ttll :
;r
....
.. II"'Q: I
J.t'tl!l r.r
1111
Srimad-Bhagavatam
344
friends and relatives are in distress, these three cannot offer any
happiness.
PURPORT
"'
:.
"' :
::ff : I
('! <:>
tctW4RleP4- ;:;;n mrq mrT IIII
"'
3f{l
sri-nanda uvaca
aho te devaki-putrab,
kamsena bahavo hatab
ekava5tavaraja
kanya sapi divaril gata
sri-nandab-
aho-alas;
te-your;
bahavab,-many;
hatdb,-have
been
killed;
ekd-one;
345
TRANSLATION
Nanda Maharaja said: Alas, King Kamsa killed so many of your
children, born of Devaki. And your one daughter, the youngest
child of all, entered the heavenly planets.
PURPORT
;@
(qglm : 1
31'[! til ;r Jl lloll
nanam hy adr$ta-ni$tho 'yam
adma-paramo janalt
admam atmanas tattvam
yo veda na sa muhyati
nanam-certainly; hi-indeed; adma-unseen; ni$thalt ayam
paramalt-ultimate;
janalt-every living entity within this material world; adr$ta m-that
destiny; atmanalt-of oneself; tattvam-ultimate truth; yalt-anyone
who; veda-knows; na-not; salt-he; muhyati-becomes bewildered.
something ends there; adma-the unseen destiny;
TRANSLATION
Every man is certainly controlled by destiny, which determines
the results of one's fruitive activities. In other words, one has a son
or daughter because of unseen destiny, and when the son or
Srimad-Bhagavatam
346
is never bewildered.
PURPORT
Nanda Maharaja consoled his younger brother Vasudeva by saying
that destiny is ultimately responsible for everything. Vasudeva should
not be unhappy that his many children had been killed by Kamsa or that
the last child, the daughter, had gone to the heavenly planets.
TEXT 31
"'
w7 3CfT'i1
fit"' "'
TRANSLATION
Vasudeva said to Nanda Maharaja: Now, my dear brother, since
you have paid the annual taxes to Kamsa and have also seen me, do
347
TEXT 32
rl
i{ti(4:1( tfm: sn'ffit rn : 1
"'
3l'111'1'1md"'IQ{
iflt{_ 1111
sri-suka uvaca
iti nandiidayo gopa
proktcls te saurir:ui yayu
anobhir aruu,lud-yuktais
tam anujtiiipya gokulam
sri-suka uvac a-Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said; iti- thus; nanda
prokta-being
advised;
te-they ;
saurir:ui-by
Vasudeva;
TRANSLATION
Sukadeva Gosviimi said: After Vasudeva advised Nanda Maharaja
in this way, Nanda Maharaja and his associates, the cowherd men,
saxwuaddy
The Author
His Divine Grace A. C. Bhaktivedanta Swami Prabhupada appeared in
this world in
1896 in
1922.
Bhakti
(1933)
1922,
at
1944,
fortnightly magazine, edited it, typed the manuscripts and checked the
galley proofs. He even distributed the individual copies freely and strug
1950,
1947
retired from married life, and four years later he adopted the
viiMprastha
(sannyiisa)
in
1959. At
master. Since that time, His Divine Grace has written over forty volumes
of authoritative translations, commentaries and summary studies of the
philosophical and religious classics of India.
351
352
Srimad-Bhigavatam
sciousness in July of 1966. Under his careful guidance, the Society has
grown within a decade to a worldwide confederation of almost one
hundred asramas, schools, temples, institutes and farm communities.
sand acres, his students have since founded several similar communities
in the United States and abroad.
In 1972, His Divine Grace introduced the Vedic system of primary and
the site for a planned Institute of Vedic Studies. A similar project is the
magnificent l(rt;}a-Balarlima Temple and International Guest House in
V:rndlivana, India. These are centers where Westerners can live to gain
firsthand experience of Vedic culture.
Srila Prabhuplida's most significant contribution, however, is his
numerous college courses. His writings have been translated into eleven
languages. The Bhaktivedanta Book Trust, established in 1972 ex
clusively to publish the works of His Divine Grace, has thus become the
world's largest publisher of books in the field of Indian religion and phi
In the past ten years, in spite of his advanced age, Srila Prabhuplida
has circled the globe twelve times on lecture tours that ave taken him to
References
The purports of Srimad-Bhagavatam are all confirmed by standard
Vedic authorities. The following authentic scriptures are specifically
cited in this volume:
Bhagavad-gitii, 17,22,24,25,28,38,40,41,42,44,48,51-52,63,64,
65,68,69,70,71,72,75,76,87,90,91,93,94,95,98,101,107,
118, 119-120, 124,125,127-128, 129-130,131,136,137-138,
145-146,150,153,156,159-160,162-163,165-166,173,174,
175-176,177-178,179, 182,184,186,189,195,197,210,216,
218,220,224,225,226,228,232,235,239,241,247-248,250,
251,256,265,267,287,292-293,297,305,317-318,325,331,
342
Bhakti-rasamrta-sindhu, 168,294-295
Brahma-sarilhitii, 17,18-19,44,46-47,87,llO, 141,155n,160,165,
187-188,200,208,210,212,217,220,239,295-296,302,329,
.
336
Caitanya-bhagavata, 199
Caitanya-candramrta, 153
Caitanya-car:itamrta, 20, 68, 101, 144, 146, 171, 192, 241, 258, 316
Cary#, llO, 303
ChandOgya Upanad, 87
Gita-Govinda, 23
Hari-bhakti-sudhodaya, 103, 175
353
Srimad-Bhigavatam
354
Hari-vamsa, 97,113,114,137
Hitopadesa, 282
Isopanad, 210
Kr$1)a-sandarbha, 261-262
Mahabluirata, 106
Markar;u.leya Purli')a, 110
Padma Purli')a, 22,47,154,172,185-186,191,304
Ramayal)a, 157
$a4-gosvamy-11ka, 153
Sik$li$11ka, 190-191,258
Srimad-Bhligavatam, 16-17,20,28,34-35,37,39,45,72,76,86,87,
94,105,124,132,138,140,142,149,165,169,174,181,190,
209,229,235,248,252,266,281,294,301,334
ViSva-koSa, 112
Glossary
A
Acirya-a spiritual master who teaches by example.
Arati-a ceremony for greeting the Lord with offerings of food, lamps,
fans, flowers and incense.
Arcana-the devotional process of Deity worship.
Artha-economic development.
Asrama-the four spiritual orders of life: celibate student, householder,
retired life and renounced life.
Asuras-atheistic demons.
Avatira-a descent of the Supreme Lord.
B
Bhagavad-giti-the basic directions for spiritual life spoken by the
Lord Himself.
Bhagavin-one who unlimitedly possesses all opulences;
term of ad-
Srimad-Bhagavatam.
mantras.
c
Catur-vyuha-the Lord's plenary expansions Vasudeva, Sankaral}.a,
Pradyumna and Aniruddha
355
Srimad-Bhagavatam
356
D
Daivas-the demigods or godly persons.
E
Ekida8i-a special fast day for increased remembrance of Kr!?a, which
comes on the eleventh day of both the waxing and waning moon.
G
Garbhiidhina-samskira-Vedic purificatory ritual for obtaining good
progeny; performed by husband and wife before child's concep
tion.
H
Hare !lt;ta mantra-See: Mahd-mantra
J
Jiva-tattva-the living entities, atomic parts of the Lord.
K
Kila-cakra-the wheel of time.
Glossary
357
Kama-lust.
the Vedas.
Karmi-a person satisfied with working hard for flickering sense
gratification.
Knt;taloka-See: Goloka
Ktatriyas-a warrior or administrator; the second Vedic social order.
L
Loka-a planet.
M
Midhurya-rasa-conjugal love relationship with the Lord.
Mahii-mantra-the great chanting for deliverance:
Mantra-a sound vibration that can deliver the mind from illusion.
MuJha-a fool.
Muni-a sage.
N
Namaskira-a polite greeting or address.
Srimad-Bhigavatam
358
p
Param brahma-the Supreme Absolute Truth, Personality of Godhead.
yoga.
Riktasas-man-eating demons.
R
s
Saktyivesa-avatira-an
Sistras-revealed
scriptures.
(not
to be
the
359
Glossary
u
Ugra-karma-evil activities.
v
Vaikutha-the spiritual world.
Vaisnava-a devotee of Lord Visnu, Krsna.
.
y
Yajiia-an activity performed to satisfy either Lord ViQ.U or the
demigods.
Yogi-a transcendentalist who, in one way or another, is striving for
union with the Supreme.
Yugas-ages in the life of a universe, occurring in a repeated cycle of
four.
ii u u r
q: e ai alt o it au
l: i
ala atfa:
l
.!.
Ih
: I} (visarga)
(anusvara)
Consonants
Gutturals:
Cfi ka
kha
lJ ga
'q gha
e ila
Palatals:
.ca
cha
ja
"jha
5Jiia
Cerebrals:
eta
tha
:S Qa
G Qha
OJ Qa
Dentals:
ata
t1' tha
da
dha
;:::r na
Labials:
qpa
pha
if ba
ll bha
;(rna
Semivowels:
ya
ra
la
qva
Sibilants:
sa
q' f?a
sa
Aspirate:
ha
o-0
-1
'
-2
-3
\l-4 '-\-5
-6
a -
\S-7 G-8
-9
Srimad-Bhagavatam
362
u - like the u in push.
- like the
(lr).
o in go.
1.t ( visarga)
- a final h-sound:
ib, like ih i.
Ta
f 'f
i
For example:
.._
ka tfiT ka
k:r
'f\
kf.
:r
....,_ e
E f
'fiti tfi'f
ki
.....
ai
ku
ki
) 1
au
ku
Cfi..._
k - as in kite
jh - as in hedgehog
kh- as in Eckhart
ii - as in canyon
g - as in give
gh- as in dig-hard
!h - as in light-heart
i1 - as in sing
c - as in chair
ch - as in staunch-heart
J
- as m JOY
! - as in tub
<,1
- as in dove
<,lha- as in red-hot
363
v - as in vine
s (palatal) - as in the s in the German
b - as in bird
bh-as in rub-hard
m -as in mother
-as in light
word sprechen
(cerebral) - as the shin shine
y - as inyes
s - asmsun
r -as in run
h -as in lwme
ka ;r" tra
(i, I, u, e,
A
t'Jcakhyur bhaja-rtljtlya
dd!d prabhundmsena
adtam dtmanas tattvaril
adtvdnyatamarilloke
adryatt1nujtl v1_10 adya oobda-satdnte 114
agnaya.S ca dvijaUndril
agner yath4 daru-viyoga-yogayor
agrato bhavitd deoo
aha me pral)a-haro harir guh4ril
aharil suto 114m abhavaril
aha bhaginy aha bh4ma
aha te devakr-putrtl
aha visrarilsito garbha
ahaya vipran veda-jnan
4.2
277
1.25
50
5.30
345
3.41
260
4.9
284
1.38
3.4
62
203
1.51
82
1.24
49
2.20
145
1.60
91
2.23
151
1.31
57
1.26
52
1.34
59
4.33
306
asyatas te ara-vratair
ath4ham ari1Sa-bh4gena
2.9
129
3.12
214
3.23
232
1.56
87
atha sarva-gu1_10peta
3.1
202
1.44
5.9
1.68
99
5.13
330
3.41
260
4.15
289
5.29
344
avddyanta vicitra!U
2.15
136
5.1
320
77
326
1.3
19
3.8
207
tlvivestlri1Sa-bh4gena
ayaril tv asabhyas tava janma nau grhe
ayaril mi tad-vadhapayo
2.16
138
3.22
230
4.42
314
4.46
318
4.26
300
3.39
257
4.30
304
1.17
40
3.17
219
anirdaS4n nirdaS4riiS ca
anobhir ancu;lud-yuktais
4.31
305
4.5
280
5.32
347
bahir-anta-pura-dvdra
4.1
276
anyaiS cdsura-bhapalair
2.2
119
bahu-ndma-niketeu
4.13
286
anytJ.S ca karilsa-sarilvigna
2.7
125
5.10
327
apothayac chila-pthe
4.8
283
2.6
123
2.10
131
138
88
2.16
1.57
1.35
60
2.32
172
bhavat-padambharuha-ndvam atra te
bhavo nirodha sthitir apy avidyaytl
bhaytlnakamrta-satdkuld nadr
2.31
170
ajnana-prabhavaham-dhr
ajta-gramya-vayav
tlkal"(lya bhartur gaditaril
tlkrtlnttl bhari-bh4rer.w
andvrtatvdd bahir antararil na te
2.25
151
5.14
332
365
2.39
194
3.50
270
Srimad-Bhigavatam
366
bhojendra-gehe 'gn.i-iikheva nuldh4
bhr4taramc4vadhu karilsam
bhr4tar mama suta/1 kaccin
bhr4tu/l samanutaptasya
bhamer bh4r4yam4114m
bhamir drpta-nrpa-vy4jabhuvi bhaum4ni bhat4ni
bibhar,i r0p4(1.y avabodha 4tm4
bibharti so 'yammama garbhago 'bhad
brahm4 bhavai ca tatraitya
brahma-hirils4mhitammene
brahm4 tad-upadh4ry4tha
brahmei4nau purodh4ya
brhad mnamtad adhu114
2.19
143
1.10
31
5.27
343
4.25
299
1.64
94
1.17
39
4.19
291
2.29
166
3.31
246
2.25
154
4.43
315
1.19
42
2.42
199
5.26
342
c
catu/1-iatamp4ribarham
cintay4no hrJJkeiam
cintayantau krta-snehau
citra-dhmja-pa14k4-srak-
1.31
56
2.24
151
3.45
263
5.6
324
D
dadh4ra sarv4tmakam 4tma-bhtuam
daimm apy anrtammkti
d4sJ114msukum4rJ!14m
d4tum arhasi mand4y4
dehamm4nu,am 4iritya
deh4ntaram anupr4pya
deha-yoga-viyogau ca
dehe mrte tammanuj4/l iapanti
dehe palicatvam 4panne
devai/1 s4nucarai/l s4kam
devakJm vasudevam ca
devakJmvasudemmca
devakJm vasudevamca
devakJ tam up4dh4vat
devakl-vasudev4bhy4m
demky4 garbha-sambandha/1
devaky4 garbha-sambhtuam
devaky4/l iayane nyasya
devaky4 jalhare garbham
devaky4mdeva-rapi(l.y4m
2.18
140
4.17
290
1.32
57
4.6
1.11
282
32
1.39
64
4.20
293
2.22
148
1.39
63
2.25
154
1.66
96
4.14
288
4.24
298
3.23
232
4.28
302
1.8
29
1.65
96
3.52
271
2.8
126
3.8
207
1.29
55
4.30
304
4.10
285
5.3
322
2.10
131
3.2
202
5.23
339
2.38
192
2.41
198
2.38
192
5.24
340
4.10
285
1.6
26
1.41
67
1.59
90
1.32
57
2.17
139
1.5
26
2.11
132
3.48
268
3.3
203
E
ek4vaiifJ4varaj4
ek4yano 'sau dvi-p_hala tri-malai
eke tam anurundh4114
e,4 tav4nuj4 b4l4
etad anyac ca sarvamme
etad v4mdariitamrapam
etat karils4ya bhagav41i
evambhav4n buddhy-anumeyaevameel tarhi bhojendra
evamdurmantribhi/1 karilsa/1
evam elan mah4-bh4ga
evamhi jantor api durvibh4vya/l
emmniiamya bhrgu-nandana s4dhuevamsa s4mabhir bhedair
evam sm-m4y4-racite,v asau pum4n
evamvimliya tamp4pam
5.29
344
2.27
161
2.4
121
1.45
78
1.12
33
3.44
262
1.64
94
3.17
219
4.31
305
4.43
315
4.26
300
1.51
82
1.14
35
1.46
78
1.43
73
1.52
83
G
gaccha devi vrajambhadre
g4mpauru,lril me ir(l.ut4mar4/l punar
2.7
1.21
125
44
2.13
134
2.15
136
2.5
122
3.40
1.18
41
5.7
324
5.5
323
1.67
98
1.21
44
5.14
332
5.8
326
5.19
336
5.11
328
5.9
326
3.40
259
2.35
181
1.42
70
4.35
307
4.46
318
1.45
78
5.18
335
5.12
330
2.4
121
2.23
151
5.32
347
4.13
286
2.42
199
1.26
52
1.35
60
3.46
265
4.23
298
J
jagclma sa-tri-nayanas
jagu/.t kinnara-gandharvcls
janyate tat-priyclrtham
janma te mayy asau pclpo
jclntavo na sadaikatra
jcltamjcltam ahan putram
3.43
261
3.5
203
4.33
306
1.63
92
jMtvcl datta-karamrcljfle
jugopa kuk#mgata cltta-cakro
jyotir yathaivodaka-pclrthivev adal,t
5.20
337
1.6
26
1.43
73
5.26
342
5.4
322
4.16
289
4.44
316
4.28
302
I
iti ghoratamcld bh4v4t
iti nandcldayo gopcl/.t
iti prabya tamdevi
ity abhplya puam
ity cldiSyclmara-ga!ldn
259
H
hamsy anyclsakta-vimukhcln
hanti sreyclmsi sarvcl(li
hantum nclrhasi kalycl(lim
harer niv4scltma-gu(lai
haridrcJ-car(la-tailcJdbhi/.t
hau f.su bclleu
367
1.19
3.6
42
206
1.23
48
3.29
244
4.18
291
1.66
96
kaccit pa!avyamnirujam
kcllena sn4na-sauc4bhycJm
kcln lokcln vai gamyclmi
kclma-rilpa-dharcln diu
kamsa evamprasann4bhyclm
kamsas ta-man4 rcljan
kclrayclm elsa vidhivat
karo vai vclriko datto
kasmdn mukundo bhagavcln
kathito vamsa-vistclro
ka uttama51oka-gu1Jijnuv4dclt
kecit prclnjalayo din4
keval4nubhav4nandokim adya tasmin kara(lfyam 4Su me
kim akclryamkadarycl!ldm
kimdul,tsaham nu scldhaoom
kim indre!ldlpa-virye(la
kimema-sarair vibudhair
kimmaycl hataycJ mando
kim udyamail,t karyanti
1.59
90
5.2
320
5.31
346
1.9
30
1.1
15
1.4
21
4.34
307
3.13
215
2.21
147
1.58
89
1.58
89
4.36
308
4.36
308
4.12
286
4.32
306
kirtimantamprathamajam
kriyclsu yas tvac-cara!14ravindoyor
kr1Jiivat4rotsava-sambhramo 'spr5an
k(le viSvesvare 'nante
krtav4n yclni viSvcltmd
1.57
88
2.37
190
3.11
212
5.13
331
4.23
297
2.12
132
1.3
1.9
20
30
M
mdbhad bhayam bhoja-pater mumar
maghmi var,aty asakrd yamdnujcl
2.41
198
3.50
270
Srimad-Bhigavatam
368
mah4rha-vaidarya-kirita-ku!l4alamah4rha-vastr4bhara(lamah4suram kalanemim
mahf mangala-bhaylhaman4rilsy asan prasann4ni
manas4 dayamdnena
mandam mandam jaladhara
mano-vacobhyam anumeya-vartmano
manuoca yata/1 sarva/1
martyo mrtyu-vyala-bhita/1 palayan
md socatam mah4-bh4gav
mdtaram pitaram bhratfn
mathunJ bhagav4n yatra
mathunJn charasen4ms ca
matsy4Sva-kacchapa-nrsimha-varahamatta/1 kaman abhipsantau
maya n4r4ya!liS4ni
mitho ghnantam na payanti
3.10
211
5.8
326
1.68
99
3.2
203
3.5
203
1.53
84
3.7
207
2.36
185
4.21
295
3.27
240
4.18
290
1.67
98
1.28
54
1.27
53
2.40
196
3.35
252
2.12
132
4.27
301
4.24
298
1.48
80
1.38
62
4.34
307
4.39
311
3.7
207
2.1
119
1.61
92
N
n4bhyanandata tad-vakyam
nadya/1 prasanna-salila
na hy asyas te bhayam saumya
naikatra priya-samvasa/1
na4tidu/lsah4 un mdm
n4madheyani kurvanti
na n4ma-rape gu-janma-karmabhir
n4n4-virya/l prthag-bhata
nandadya ye vraje gopa
nanda/1 kamsasya varikyam
nandalayam sa-valaya vrajatir virejur
nandas tv atmaja utpanne
nanda-vrajam saurir upetya tatra tan
nando maha-manas tebhyo
nanv aham te hy avaraja
3.3
203
1.54
85
5.25
341
1.13
33
2.11
132
2.36
185
3.15
218
1.62
92
5.19
336
5.11
328
5.1
320
3.51
270
5.15
332
4.6
282
262
1.46
78
3.25
236
3.53
272
2.39
194
5.28
343
4.35
307
5.10
327
3.39
257
4.19
292
5.31
346
3.26
238
1.47
79
3.8
207
4.32
306
1.4
21
5.30
345
5.25
341
1.34
58
pradurasam varada-r&;l
prtlg eva vidyamdnatvan
prajt1Say4 nivrttasya
pralamba-baka-ca!'Uraprapsyami tvam yaodayam
3.38
255
3.16
219
5.23
339
2.1
119
2.9
129
0
oghena vyahyamdn4n4m
3.44
1.13
33
1.5
26
3.46
265
1.49
81
1.47
79
5.22
339
1.53
84
2.14
135
3.52
271
1.60
pratiy4tu kumaro yam
pratyarcya k-caritam kali-kala- 1.14
1.7
prayacchato mrtyum utamrtam ca
1.33
praya(la-prakrame tala
5.21
prita/1 priyatamam dorbhyam
1.52
pajayam asa vai saurir
91
35
27
58
338
83
5.22
339
5.28
343
1.22
46
4.15
289
1.20
43
1.56
87
1.54
85
R
raho-ju kim hari{lii
r4jadh4ni tata s4bhat
r4janya-samjMsura-ko#-yathapair
r4jli4m cobha ya-vari1Sy4n4m
r4meti loka-rama(l4d
raSmin hay4n4m jagr4ha
rohi(li ca mah4-bh4g4
rohi(li vasudevasya
rohi(lytis tanaya prokto
r vinirgame karilso
nipam cedam pauam dhy4narapam yat tat pr4hur avyaktam 4dyam
4.36
308
1.28
54
3.21
229
1.1
2.13
15
134
1.30
56
5.17
334
2.7
125
1.8
29
1.65
96
3.28
242
3.24
233
2.17
139
2.19
143
s
sa bibhrat paurm dh4ma
s4 devaki sarva-jagan-niv4sasa ea jivan khalu sampareto
sa eva svaprakrtyedam
saham4nau sv4sa-rodha-
2.22
148
3.14
216
3.34
252
sa hi sarva-sur4dhyao
sa katham bhaginim hany4t
s4lv4n vidarbh4n nadh4n
samudvije bhavad-dheto
samyag ryavasit4 buddhis
4.42
314
1.37
61
2.3
121
3.29
244
1.15
37
sandtaivam bhagavat4
sandiSya s4dhu-lokasya
sarika-cakra-gad4-padmasarikha-tarya-mrdallg4S ca
sannipatya samutp4dya
2.14
135
4.44
316
3.30
245
1.33
58
3.16
219
sanniyamyendriya-gr4mam
saptamo va(lavam dh4ma
sapta-tvag ta-vitapo nav4
sarg4ya raktam rajasopabrmhitam
3.33
250
2.5
122
2.27
161
3.20
227
369
1.63
92
4.9
284
4.3
278
4.45
317
3.22
231
3.24
233
2.35
181
2.34
178
2.29
166
4.16
289
3.28
242
3.20
227
1.22
46
4.11
285
3.35
252
2.26
155
2.26
155
5.5
323
3.11
212
1.37
61
4.4
280
4.27
301
2.37
190
2.21
147
5.4
322
1.49
81
3.51
271
4.3
278
4.41
313
3.9
211
1.27
53
5.15
333
1.41
67
3.12
214
1.55
86
1.69
100
2.31
170
5.12
330
3.14
216
T
t4 4S prayuiij4n4S
tad anu tvam hy aprafa
370
todd um paritto
. 'ham
taddyam sutapd nama
t4 kmw-uihe vasudeva agate
tais tai kamair adinatmd
tam adbhutam bdlakam ambujea(lllm
tam aha bhrtitaram devi
tam dr,;tvli sahasotthtiya
t4m grhitro cara(lllyor
Srimad-Bhagavatam
3.37
255
3.32
249
3.49
268
5.16
333
3.9
211
4.4
280
5.21
388
4.8
283
tam jugupsita-karmti(Illm
t4m vya kamsa prabhaytijit4ntartim
tan-mal4 devatci sarro
tapasti sraddhayti nityam
tapasvino yajlia-si/an
1.36
61
2.20
145
4.42
314
3.37
255
4.40
312
4.21
295
1.44
77
4.29
303
1.29
55
4.40
312
4.39
311
5.18
335
5.27
343
3.47
267
4.37
309
2.33
176
4.37
309
4.1
276
2.18
140
1.20
43
1.2
18
2.8
126
1.61
3.43
261
3.21
229
2.28
164
3.32
249
2.40
196
2.28
164
3.27
240
2.30
167
3.19
225
2.33
176
4.5
280
3.19
225
2.30
167
u
uddhtima-kaiicy-aligada-kankar;widibhir
ugrasenam ca pitaram
ugrasena-suta kamsa
upaguhytitmajtim evam
uptihrtoru-balibhi
upalabdho bharon adya
upasamhara viSrotmann
upasthit4ntike tasmai
upasthito nivarteta
upendra iti vikhytito
3.10
211
1.69
100
1.30
56
4.7
283
4.11
285
5.24
340
3.30
245
1.18
41
1.50
81
3.42
260
5.2
320
v
mcayitm svastyayanam
vakt4ram pracchakam srotf'rils
vaktum arhasi sarvajlia
va-vt1tcitapa-himavasudeva-grhe scitid
1.16
38
1.12
33
3.34
252
1.23
48
92
4.22
296
4.14
288
3.48
268
3.42
260
4.29
303
2.3
121
4.2
277
4.45
317
5.3
322
v4sudeva-ka/ananta
v4sudeva-kathti-prana
v&udeva-kathciyam te
vasudeva uparutya
vasudeva mahti-bhtiga
vasudeva 'pi tam prita
vavar parjanya upamsu-garjita
vavau myu sukha-sparsa
veda-kriya-yoga-tapa-samtidhibhis
vicitra-dhtitu-barhasrag-
1.24
49
1.16
38
1.15
37
5.20
337
1.36
61
1.55
86
3.49
269
3.4
203
2.34
178
5.7
325
3.13
215
3.6
206
3.18
223
1.50
81
4.41
313
1.7
5.16
27
333
1.25
50
3.31
246
5.6
324
1.40
65
1.10
31
3.38
255
1.62
92
5.17
334
3.25
237
4.25
299
y
ya 4tmano driya-gu,e,u sann iti
y4citas 14m vinirbhartsya
yad4 bahir gantum iye,a tarhy aj4
3.18
222
4.7
283
3.47
267
yadoi ca dharma-srlasya
yadlln4m kadanam cakre
yadlln4m nija-n4th4n4m
yadu-pury4m sah4v4t.srt
yad-vi!rambh4d aham p4pa
yady asau na nivarteta
yarhy ev4jana-janmarkfam
ya!od4 nanda-patnr ca
yath4mayo 'rtge samupekfito nrbhir
yath4nevam-vido bhedo
yath4 troa-jalaukaivam
yatheme 'vikrt4 bh4v45
yathendriya-gr4ma upekfitas tath4
yato yato dh4vati daiva-coditam
yatra kva v4 pilroa-satrur
y4vad dhato 'smi hant45mrye 'nye 'ravind4kfa vimukta-m4ninas
yo yam k4las tasya te 'vyakta-bandho
yuv4m m4m putra-bh4vena
yuv4m vai brahma!lddi.,tau
371
1.2
18
2.2
119
2.6
123
1.11
32
4.17
290
1.48
80
3.1
202
3.53
272
4.38
310
4.20
293
1.40
65
3.15
218
4.38
310
1.42
70
4.12
286
4.22
296
2.32
172
3.26
238
3.45
263
3.33
250
General Index
Numerals in boldface type indicate references to translations of the verses of Srimad
Bhagavatam.
Leaders,government; Politicians
Advaitam acyutam anddim ananta-rupam
quoted,87
Abhaya defmed,196
Abhayam sarvadd tasmai
verse quoted,157
Abhyasa-yoga-yuktena
quoted,71
Abhyutthdnam adharmasya
verse quoted,40,118,120,145-146,
155n,l95,331
Abrahma-bhuvani!l lokd
quoted,241
Ahaituky apratihatd
verse quoted,294
Aham ddir hi devdni!m
Absolute Truth
devotional service reveals,156
Lord KrQa as,34,156, 158,160
personal & impersonal realization of,75
See also: KrQ.a,Lord; Supreme Lord
Abudhadefined,223
Acdryas (saintly authorities)
duty of,171
quoted,87,235
Aham sarvasya prabhavo
quoted,235
Aham tvdm sarva-pdpebhyo
quoted,28
Ahankdra (false ego). See: Bodily concept
Ahankdra itiyam
me
verse quoted,216,224
Ahankdra vimii4hdtmd
quoted,52
verse quoted,51-52
Aitaddtmyam idam sarvam
Acintya-bheddbheda (oneness-and
difference) philosophy,128,236
Activities
quoted,224
Ajo 'pi sann avyaydtmd
quoted,210
Supreme Lord,activities of
Akr\ira,122,193
Amdra djMya guru haM tdra' ei dew
verse quoted,144
of irresponsible persons,318
in KrQ.a consciousness movement,192
See also: Endeavor; Fruitive activities;
Ambari MahArAja,69
Ambuja defined,34
verse quoted,34-35
Amsena defined,102
373
374
Srimad-Bhigavatam
verse quoted,18-19
Analogies
birds in tree & soul-Supersoul in body,
162, 163
boat & Lord's lotus feet,168, 169,172
boat & mind,71
dreaming & transmigration,67, 100-101
dress & body,64
earth element & living entity,292
electricity & Lord's potency,51
fiery rod & s{liritualized body,103
fire (covered) & Devak.l (imprisoned), 142,
143
fire leaping & soul transmigrating, 82-83,
102
Ganges River & spiritual master, 294-295
jaundice patients & nondevotees, 188
king's government & Lord's creation,221
knowledge (misused) & Devak.i
(imprisoned),142,143
'!).a's advent & awakening ,I).a con
sciousness,128-129
luminary's reflection & soul's covering,74
moonrise & Lord's advent,141, 142,208,
210
ocean & material world,168, 169,
170-171, 172
original lamp & 'I).a, 160
potter's wheel & cosmos,239-240
sun & Lord,209-210
sunshine & Lord's energy, 222
tree & body,161-162, 163
watchdogs & politicians, 277, 279
Ananda-cinmaya-ra&a-pratibh4vit4bhis
verse guoted,208,329
Ananta (Se,a-niga)
as Baladeva,127
,I).a indescribable by,19
AnarthopaSa,maril s4kd
verse quoted,37
Antara-stha-param47J.u-cay4ntara-stharil
quoted,155n,200,201,210,236
verse quoted,217
Anger
of fool at good instructions,282
of Lord at demons,228-229
of Vasudeva & Devak.i at Kamsa relieved,
299-300
Animals
atheists compared to,40
care for, 342
killing of. See: Animal slaughter
modern men compared to,179,180
See al!o: Cows; names of other specific
animals
Animal slaughter
Buddha stopped,23
l(nl).a consciousness prohibits, 103
as sinful, 150,342
in Vedic sacrifices,23-24
See also: Cows,killing of; Hunters,animal
Aniruddha,108
Antary4mfdefined,155n,156
Ante n4r4ya-smrti
quoted,28
Anukalyena krlr:uJ.nuquoted,152
Anuv4da defined,105
Anxiety. See: Suffering
Anyc'1bhil4,it4-sanyam
quoted,258
verse quoted,162-163,224
Apa&mrti defined,69,101
Apa5yat4m 4tma-tattvaril
verse quoted,132
Appearance of the Lord. See: ,I).a,Lord,
"birth" of; Supreme Lord,advent of
General Index
Aprapya mam nivartante
verse quoted,173
Apr,207,285-286
Aradhanadefined,248
375
Attachment
Aurangzeb,King,98
Austerities
Ari. 119
Arjuna
fought for Krl).a,27, 84-85
Ava(lava-mukhodginJ.am
Asraddadhdna pura
verse quoted,173
Astra-sastra-pravir;w.S ca
verse quoted,106
tual master
verse quoted,22,191-192
Avan-manasa-gocara
quoted,220
Avyakta defined,183
Ayodhya,112
verse quoted,150
ASvatthama,28,29
Ata sri-kmr.a-namiidi
Baka,119
verse quoted,185-186
verse quoted,113
Athava bahunaitena
verse quoted,130
Atheists
compared to animals,40
God avoided by, 152-153, 279
quoted,75
&kandha-nyaya logic,228
Balarama (Baladeva),Lord
in Devaki's womb,127, 129
as independent,109
as KrI).a's brother,50,130,338
as Knl).a's expansion,18, 19,102,127,
198
mother of,30,335,343
other names of,134-135
plow carried by,338
as Sailkaral).a,127,130,134,137
sustains universe,109
Yogamaya transferred,from Devaki to
Rohil).i,137
Srimad-Bhagavatam
376
BAJ;tAsura, 119
&rhavatarilsam asitambuda-sundararlgam
quoted, 212
Benediction
257
of J(rl).a on Vasudeva (Sutapa) & Devaki
(P:rsni), 255, 257-259
Bhagavad-daranad yasya
Bhagavad-gita
See also: Bhagavad-gitii, cited; Bhagavadgita, quotations from
duty to read, 99
175-176,247-248
on duty, 136,179
on equanimity, 90
189,241,250
as Vedas' essence, 69
Bhagavad-gita, cited
on l).a consciousness, 68
on J(rr,a's supremacy, 22
153,195
on Lord as birthless, 210
on spiritual sky, 17
101
226,239
ings, 292-293
182,186
165-166,235
on devotee as best yogi, 125
on devotee going back to Godhead, 48
on devotee never perishing, 159-160
on devotee undisturbed by difficulty, 153
119-120,145-146,195,267,331
on Lord saving devotee from birth & death,
165
on Lord's inferior & superior energies,
162-163,224
377
General Index
Bhagavad-gitd, quotations from
on Lord's material energies, 216,267
on Lord's protection, 28
on Lord's spiritual energy, 265
on loving the Lord, 175
on mahatmas, 52
on materialists, 24
on material world, 241
on mind as flickering, 71
72
on obeisances to the Lord,
197
177-178
on perfection of life,
175
on pious birth, 48,94
69
179
251
150,228
on social orders,
41
137-138
218
on Supersoul, 124
on Supreme Brahman, 44
on spiritual master,
209
107
BhogaiSvarya-prasaktdndm
verse quoted, 24
Bhoja dynasty, 62, 112
Bhramayan sarva-bhata.ni
quoted, 287
verse quoted, 293
Bhamir tlpo 'nalo vayu
verse quoted, 216,224
Bhata-bhrn na ca bhata-stho
verse quoted, 127-128
Bhatvtl bhatva praliyate
quoted, 241
Bhakti-rasamrta-sindhu
75
91
on vaiSyas (agriculturalists),
325
sciousness
by Riipa Gosvami,
171
168
Birth
163
63
205
Srimad-Bhagavatam
378
Birth (continued)
Body, material
of l).a.
purification stops, 73
Bondage.
Maya; Modes of
45,46,48-50
Body, material
changes of, 292
compared to dress, 64
Brahma-bhataiJ. prasannatmd
verse quoted, 75,175-176
formation of, 70
235
Brahman (impersonal Absolute), 235,236
Brahman, Supreme
Lord as, 44
379
General Index
Lord protects,313
Lord's advent gladdened, 204-205, 206
verse quoted,171,241
Brahman effulgence
235-236
(brahmajyoti), 222,
BrahmaJ;W hi prat4thaham
quoted,235
Brahma-sarhhita
by Brahmli,182,183
Brahma-sarhhita,
quotations from
Caitanya-caritamrta, cited
on Q.a's advent, 50
187
165
tions, 302
on KrQ.a's supremacy,18-19,44
on Lord as all-pervading, 236
on Lord's abode,17
on MahA-ViQ.u, 217
171,241
144,192
mantra, 146
Caitanya Mahliprabhu
Brahmins.
quoted,225
See: BrahmaT;UJS
144,192
Srimad-Bhigavatam
380
Cdl).akya Pal).ita
Candra,43
Cdl).ura,119
Ciiral).as,207, 285-286
of; VaiSyas
Catur-van;r.yam maya smam
quoted,41, 179
killing of,231,232
verse quoted,329
Citraketu,177
Civilization,modern
in bodily concept,150
condemned,231,232,326
in ignorance, 163
Godhead
Cause,ultimate
Brahman as,224
destiny as,82-83
crazy,342-343
materialistic,146
Ceto-darpar;a-marjanam
Sacrifices
quoted,256
quoted,104
227-228
Cow(s)
earth in form of,42
Caitanya recommends,72
for Kali-yuga,180
by Siva, 154
in Western countries,171
protection of,313,325,326,342
381
General Index
Cowherd men of Vndavana
Nanda appointed,to protect home in his
absence, 336-337
Cowherd women.
See: Gopis
Heavenly planets;
Demigods
demons advised Kamsa about,306-311,
314
demons vs.,120
Devaki encouraged by,196,198
as devotees,95
Kamsa-Devaki clash incited by,59
in I).a's pastimes,93,94
Cruelty condemned,148,149,282
Lord above,43,87,164-166,235
208
at milk ocean,42,43,108
prayers for 14I).a by.
See: Prayers,by
Dam-pati defined,258
Daridra-naraya{la, 333
Death
worship toward,87-88,101,156-157,235
(asuras)
demigods vs.,120
control over,107,251
devoted to Durga,288,291
duty to avoid,80
as fools,305
Deer,Bharata became,177,191
by,313-315
Lord kills,95,228,229,230,245
Lord's advent derided by,45
persecuted saintly persons, 317
selfish nature of,60,231,280
VaiI).avas vs.,315
world ruined by,230
Yadus persecuted by,119,120,121
Srimad-Bhigavatam
382
Desire,material
body according to,287,292
conditioned soul bound by,65
freedom from,103,258
Knl).a consciousness dispels,25-26,35
love of God dispels, 258
Destiny
as controller,345-346
demigods encouraged,196,198
dowry from Devaka to,57-58
fearedKamsa would killKrl).a,233,236,
242,243-244,245-246
Kamsa attacked,60
Kamsa frightened,128-129
Kamsa imprisoned,97
Kaiilsa killed sons of,97,113,122,123
Kamsa repented atrocities to,288-299
asKamsa's sister,56,62,147,148
247,249,253,258,261-264,268,
272-273
Devaki
Krl).a within,130,141,142,143,145,
158,198,220,221,222
256,257-260,261,262
symbolizes bhakti, 128-129
as transcendental,209,248,288
as demigods,95
as happy,153
hearing aboutKrl).a from,22-23
383
General Index
Devotees
withKamsa awaiting Lord's advent,
123
karmis contrasted to, 105
Devotional service
122,
( bhakti-yoga)
156
acdryas recommend, 184
benefit of, 196
desire for, 191, 258
devotee continues, 48-49,191
devotee's duty in, 84,95,194
via guru & Krl}.a, 171,172
191-192
24,26,
35,171
as learned, 164-165
as liberated souls, 110,190,191
Lord as son of, 138-139, 249,250
Lord enlightens, 107,124
Lord fulfills desire of, 170-171
Lord known to, 190,263
Lord maintains, 159-160
Lord present with, 142
Lord protects, 123,124,167,176-177,
178,230,243,301-302
Lord purifies, 165
Lord's form enchants, 169,175
Lord's incarnations understood by, 199
Lord's mercy on, 165,170-171,187,193
Lord's opulences available to, 177-178
Lord's pastimes please, 104
love the Lord, 187-189
materialists contrasted to, 133
Niirada Muni makes, 154
nondevotee contrasted to, 152-153,165,
176,188,191,263
promoted to Lord's pastimes, 48-49,70,94
remember Lord at death, 69-70
see Lord's will everywhere, 165,302
as transcendental, 190
vow of, in Lord's abodes, 55
worship the Lord, 159,182
worship toward, 103-104,333-334
yogis excelled by, 125,142
See also: Disciple; Pure devotees; names of
specific devotees
186,189,220,248
55
in Lord's abodes,
by mind, 213
65,69,
187,248
247
168
pure, 75,273,294
stages of, 247,248,256
in opulence or love,
power of,
Dhdmadefined, 140,142
Srimad-Bhigavatam
384
Dream
137-138
transmigration compared to, 67,100-101
Duck, foolish, 228
material life compared to,
Dukhev anudvigna-mana
quoted, 90
Durasaya ye bahir-artha-manina
quoted,
311
quoted,
152
Durtitmtis defined, 52
Durdantendriya-kala-sarpa-patali protkluua
datrayate
verse quoted,
106
Ekantam upasari.gamya
verse quoted,
113
Ekatvam anupayata
quoted, 303
Duryodhana, Ill
51
in body, 64,162,222,292
Duty
before death, 80
Bhagavad-gita study as,
of devotees, 95,194
99
146
179
specific elements
152-153
of government leaders, 41
310
325
Dviraki
217
quoted, 154
210
verse quoted,
humans neglecting,
quoted,
304
devotee defeats,
159
177,178
308
etiquette in fighting,
transmigration for, 72
See also: Bliss, transcendental; Happiness
Entities, individual. See: Living entities
385
General Index
Envy, fearful result of, 77
205-206
quoted,
229
82-83,102
Eternality
by knowing Lord's advent & activities,
98,
250
by q.a consciousness,
242
Lord, form of
Freedom from material desires,
Supreme
103,258
ex
Fruitive activities
body according to, 64-65
destiny controls, 345-346
everyone controlled by,
freedom from,
296
76
Sin
ful activities
Fruitive workers.
Falldown
of devotees, 176-177
of nondevotees, 173, 17 4
of politicians,
174
False ego.
Farmers.
Ganges River
252
Parents
Fear
294-295
59
232,233
of death, 63,240, 241,242
ment's life,
verse quoted,
GauQa.-maq.Qala-bhumi,
Gitd.
malicious men,
of material existence,
transcendental,
146
124,128,129
248
233
215
Festivals, Vedic.
108,217,221
54
See: Bhagavad-git4
23
See: Supreme Lord,
243-244, 245-246
of q.a consciousness movement by
120
Garbhodakaslyi-Viq.u,
glorification of
Go-br4hma-,a-hitdya ca
313
See: Ktq.a, Lord;
quoted,
God.
Lord
God consciousness
152-153
66
neglect, 311-312
atheists avoid,
life without,
people
336
Srimad-Bhigavatam
386
Godhead, returning to
Happiness
in Kali-yuga, 180
by i(rQ.a consciousness, 152,254
Hari, 133
material
Caitanya recommends, 96
chanting of, 72,146,186,191,232,254,
quoted, 108
256-257
KnQ.a consciousness movement propagates,
180
KnQ.a in, 146
quoted, 135,186,230
Rama in, 135
H
Happiness
Heavenly planets
of devotee, 153
General Index
Heavenly planets
moon among,242
residents of. See: Demigods
time on,241,255-256
women of,in Qa's pastimes,49
See also: Creation,the; Spiritual world;
Universe(s)
Hell
via bodily concept, 149
Bhagavad-gitd for,180
types of,104,154
Vedic knowledge for, 163
Society,human; Soul,conditioned
Hunters,animal,105-106
I
Ignorance
bodily concept as,179,297,300-301
387
Ignorance
civilization in, 163
verse quoted,294-295
Illusion.
See: Dream;
Ignorance;
M4yd
hearing from,forbidden,191
labor of,75,174
Lord's form misunderstood by,183, 184,
186
limitless,199
as transcendental, 179,182,183
Srimad-Bhigavatam
388
India (continued)
birth-control agitation in,251
]iva-bhata defined,219-220
]iva-bhatam mah4-b4ho
verse quoted,162-163,224
]iva Gosvimi, cited
on Baladeva,109
on bodily concept,149,150
102
on l).a within Devaki,199-200
on Lord as m4ya-manya, 107-108
on Narada & Kamsa,97
]ivan-muktaiJ, sa ucyate
quoted,103,190
verse quoted,18-19
IsvaraiJ, sarva-bhat4n4m
quoted,124,138,163
verse quoted,293
J
Jagad-dhit4ya krr;u1ya
verse quoted,313
]aghanya-gur;w-vrtti-sth4
]fidna-bala-kriy4 defined,159
]fidnamayi defined,248
]fidna defined,248
]nanis reject world,225
See also: 1mpersonalists; Philosophers
]natva slistra-vidh4noktam
verse quoted,136
verse quoted,72
K
Kaivalyam narakayate tridaSa-pur ak4Sa
pp4yate
quoted, 152
quoted,209,267
verse quoted,98,189,250
Kilanemi
]anma-mrtyu-jar4-vy4dhi
quoted,251,294
Jarisandha,119, 120
]4ta-karma defined,321
Kamsa was,99,112,113,123
sons of,112-113
General Index
Kala-viSe defined,19
Kali-kiile ndma-rupe kmaa-avatlira
quoted,146,230
Kali-yuga (age of Kali)
389
Kamsa
omen of doom for,59,60
politicians as baser than,292
quoted on bodily concept of life, 293-294,
297
kmaa-kathli counteracts,20,36,37
control,291,295
repented atrocities to Vasudeva & Devaki,
288-299
soul's transmigration known to,147,149
symbolizes fear,129
as Ugrasena's son,100,243
cruel,282,283
deliberated on Devaki pregnant with
a,147,148,149,151
78,79,80,81-86,88,89,112
232,233
Vasudeva imprisoned by,97
Vasudeva's advice to,about life & death,
62-64,65,66,67,71,74,76,77
277
Yogamiiyii outwitted, 284-286, 303-304
Kandarpa-ko#-kamaniya-viSe-sobham
245-246
Devaki imprisoned by,97
Devaki pleaded with,on baby daughter's
behalf,280-283
Devaki's sons killed by,97,113,122,123
forgiven by Vasudeva & Devaki,299-300
as Kalanemi in past birth,99,112,113,
123
in knowledge of self,292, 297
as a conscious unfavorably, 152,153,
154
a killed,31, 32,97
a saved,29,99,107
verse quoted,187-188
quoted,65,72,101
nuiyliinfluenced, 110,280
105,152
Srimad-Bhigavatam
390
Karmrs (continued)
See also: Materialists; Nondevotees; Soul,
conditioned
Kartavirylrjuna, 111
Ka8yapa, Vasudeva was,261
Kri-go-raya-v4r}ijyarh
Kaunteya pratij4nrhi
quoted,159,177
Kaustubha gem,211
Kekayas,121
Devakl, 199-200
quoted,325,338, 342
J(nQ.a, Lord
4c4ryas accept,184
activities of. See: l(nQ.a, pastimes of
as Acyuta, 87
as 4di-pu, 44
Arjuna and,27, 84-85, 279
Balarlma as expansion of,18, 19,102,
127,198
as Balarima's brother,50, 130,338
beyond description,19
beyond material world,216
"birth" of
auspicious sins at, 204-205, 206,
208-209
ceremony celebrating, 320-335
demigods attending,207, 208
from Devaki, 88-90,128,208, 209,
210,213,283
from Devaki & Yasodlsimultaneously,
268,285
from devotee, 138-139
l(nQ.a's transfer after,31
mystery of,Nanda unaware of,345
in past milleniums, 260, 261
as perpetual pastime,48
time of,204, 205,206
transcendental,97-98
transformation at,265, 266-267
Vasudeva beheld,2ll, 213, 214
in Brahma-sarhhi14, 182,183
via disciplic succession,182
Kamsa in,292,297
Lord imparts,25
General Index
391
:1\ra,Lord
Kna. Lord
body of
transcendental, 180
as eternal, 249
expansions of
Viu, 108,217
as 1\na Himself, 47
Baladeva in, 50
Sukadeva summarized, 16
women of heaven in, 49
as Giridhari, 184,188
as Gopala, 188
268-272,273
Vasudeva for 1\na
249,253,258,261-262,264-265,
268
as Vi1,1u, 234-236
Srimad-Bhagavatam
392
Knq.a,Lord (continued)
YogamAyA blessed by,130
as YogamAyA's brother,284-285,321
130,131,133,135-136
Kamsa in,unfavorably,152,153,154
Qa consciousness movement
320-335
General Index
Kriyas
17
Ketra-jiia defined,
393
Liberation
168
75,103
Life
of BrahmA, 19,241
163
human
for austerity,
quoted,
on higher planets,
124,163
verse quoted,
150,228
217,221,228
irodaka8Ayi Vi!fl).U,
186,264
94
of, 27-28,29,184,
77
177
329
316
Leaders, government
40-41,47,230
41
230-232
38
Liberation
of conditioned soul,
51,52
168,263,295,315
by hearing l(nl).a's activities, 20-23,25,
105
by knowing the Lord, 189
l(nl).a gives, 29,107-108,184
by loving the Lord, 175
nondevotees fall short of, 173
by devotional service,
146,162-163
Living entities
311-312
293-294
137-138
devotee as beyond, 302
pure devotee fears, 124,128,129
spiritual life vs., 34,35
compared to dream,
duty of,
242
336
as blind,
Life, material
sevyam4nam
verse quoted,
40,41
34,35
328
29,68,174-175
scientists misunderstand, 152-153,223
Lami-sahasra-sata-sambhrama
verse quoted,
perfection of,
quoted,
Kurus, 121
Lak!fmi, mother,
253-254
150
on moon,
value of,
241
292
156-157,241
fear death, 241
form of, 74-76
Lord contrasted to, 74-76,194-195, 196,
205,210,212,265-266
as Lord's parts & parcels, 152-153,
194-195,196
as Lord's servants, 73-75
Lord supervises, 293
in material world, 287
in m4ytJ, 74,303
nature controls, 291,300
suffering of, 194-195,196
wander the universe, 101
as eternal,
Srimad-Bhagavatam
394
Lokasyajtlnato vidviirh.S
verse quoted, 37
Mamaiviirh.So jiva-loke
Marh ca yo 'vyabhiciire'(Ul
Mad-bhakta-pujabhyadhikd
quoted, 334
Mahii-bhaga defined, 61
Mahiibhiirata
radhii-kr'(Ul na
quoted, 24
Marriage
quoted, 170
quoted, 52
Materialists
395
General Index
Materialists
VaiJ;Ulvas contrasted to, 133
worship MAyAdevl, 131,133
See also: Atheists; Demons; Kannrs; Non
devotees; Soul, conditioned
Material nature. See: Nature, material
Material world
compared to ocean, 168, 169,170-171,
172
Maya (nuhdmdyd)
Yogamdyd potency
MayiJdhyaef}a prakrti
quoted, 51,106,226,239,277
Mathuri
as Lord's abode, 54, 55,111
phers
Mercy of the Lord. See: Supreme Lord,
mercy of
Mind
oompared to boat, 71
as flickering, 68-70,71, 72,102
Mat-sthdni sarva-bhaUJni
Srimad-Bhagavatam
396
Mohitam nabhijanati
quoted, 166
Moka. See: Liberation
Moa-dharma, cited on demigods & ViI,m,
108
Monists. See: lmpersonalists; ]fidnis
Moon
dynasty from, 17,209
at Qa's advent, 209
scientists haven't gone to, 242
Moonrise & Lord's advent, analogy of, 141,
142,208,210
Moon's reflection & soul's covering, analogy
of, 74
N
Na ca mat-sthdni bhutani
verse quoted, 127-128
Nama-karal)n ceremony, 88
Namasyanta ca mdril. bhaktyd
verse quoted, 191
Names of the Lord. See: Chanting the
Supreme Lord's holy names; Hare
Qa mantra; Qa, Lord, name of;
Supreme Lord, names of
Nama brahmar;r,ya-devaya
verse quoted, 313
Nama maha-vadanyaya
verse quoted, 256
Nanda-grama, 31
Nanda Maharaja
descended from heavenly planets, 93
Qa's "birth" festival performed by,
320-335
mystery of Qa's "birth" unknown to,
345
in parental love of Qa, 111
Mutika, 119
Mysticism. See: Qa consciousness;
Yoga
Mystics. See: Devotees; Yogis
397
General Index
Narada Muni, 36
chants Lord's name, 105
Nature, material
See also: Body, material; Elements, ma
terial; Maya; Modes of material
nature
Navadvipa-dhilma, 54-55
Nikhilasv apy avasthasu
quoted, 190
verse quoted, 294-295
as jaundiced, 188
54
Na siidhu manye yata atmano yam
quoted, 76,149
Nasayamy atma-bhavastho
verse quoted, 124
263,264
quoted, 226
Nature, material
body awarded by, 64-65,72,279
Ocean
of birth & death. See: Birth and d eath
peated
re
Srimad-Bhigavatam
398
Ocean (continued)
p
Pada-ratn4valr.tfk4, cited on Mlyldevi's
names,134
Padma Purl11}a, quotations from
on 4c4rya-samprad4ya, 172
on hearing from nondevotees as forbidden,
22,191
on tQa and His name,47
on Lord known by devotional service,
185-186
on suras & asuras, 304
Pain. See: Suffering
Pancilas,121
PAQQ&vas,tQ.a saved,27-28,29
Parama-pua defined,43
Paramlltmll. See: Supersoul
General Index
Philosophers,Lord's incarnation denied by,
195
See also: 1m personalists; ]Mnis
Philosophy, acintya-bhedabheda (oneness
and-difference),128, 236
See also: Absolute Truth; Knowledge,
transcendental
Planets. See: Astrology; Earth planet;
Heavenly planets; Universe(s)
Pleasure. See: Bliss,transcendental; Enjoy
ment,material; Happiness
Politician(s)
399
PrajApatis,53
Prilkrta-siSu defined,266
Prakrte kriyamdllfini
quoted,168,277,291
verse quoted,51-52
Prakidefined,239
See also: Nature,material
Pralamba,119
Prapya pur;tya-karh lokan
verse quoted,94
Prayers
by demigods for Krlll),a,154-197
animalistic,180
on body,161-162
on devotees,176,190
compared to watchdogs,277,279
as demoniac rulers,230
Devaki as,281
falldown of,174
hearing from,forbidden,191
Kamsa better than,292
in maya, 277
methods of,three listed,281
shelter,168,170-171,193
on Lord's transcendental nature,181,
185
on nondevotees,173
by Devaki for Krlll),a,233-247
woman as,281
on Lord's forms,227
Pradyumna,108
PrahlAda MahArAja
Nsimhadeva and,107,230
quoted on protection & Lord's sanction,
157
Prahlado janako bhmo
verse quoted,169
by;
Supreme
Srimad-Bhigavatam
400
PTenlddefined,247,248
PTenldfijarw.-cchurita-bhakti-vilocanerw.
quoted,165,175,188,220
verse quoted,187,247
Prthag-dr#/:1 sa vijfieyo
verse quoted,302
Punldn defined,105
Purw./:1 puna.S carvita-carvai;U'inam
quoted,35
Q
Quadruple expansions of Godhead (catur-
vyaha)
as Baladeva's expansions,19
as Kr;a's expansions,108
second,Sailkara;a (Ananta) among,30,
122,123
R
Radha kmra-pra"{Ulya-vikrtir hladini-Saktir
quoted,110
Radhara;i and Kr;a,109,248,336
Rain at Kr;a's advent,269, 270
Rajari defined,38
Rajo-gu"{UJ. See: Passion,mode of
Rakasas (man-eaters),present society pro
ducing,289
Purification
by chanting Hare i(r,;a,254,256-257
of devotee by Lord,165
by Ganges,39
by ;a consciousness,68,73
by kmra-katha,
39
in sun dynasty,17
General Index
Rasa (relationship with Q.a)
nuldhurya- (conjugal), 248
stages of, 52,247
401
Regulative principles
of Q.a consciousness movement,
171-172
s
Sac-chadba uttamarh brayad
verse quoted, 160
Sac-cid-4nanda-vigraha defined, 32
Sacrifices
Religion
Lord upholds, 331
Ritualistic ceremonies
animal killing in, 23-24
at Q.a's "birth," 320-335
Lord's advent restored, 204, 205-206
name-giving, 88
Vasudeva mentally performed, at Lord's
"birth," 213
See also: Sacrifices
Rivers at 11-a's advent, 204,205,206
RohiQ.i
as BalarAma's mother, 30,127,335,343
at 11-a's "birth" festival, 335
as Vasudeva's wife, 335
Yogamaya transferred Balarama from
Devaki to, 137
master
'Sadhu-sariga, ' 'sadhu-sariga '-sarva-Sdstre
kaya
verse quoted, 316
Sadhu-sdstra, guru-v4kya
quoted, 191
Sages
came as cows to please Lord, 109
Sa gu!ldn samatUyaitdn
verse quoted, 69, 248
Sahasra-yuga-paryantam
quoted, 241,256
Spiritual muter
Srimad-Bhigavatam
402
Sankha-cakra-gada-padma
Saktas defined,133,287
verse quoted,157
SAlva,111,120
SAlvas,121
Salvation.
See: Liberation
Sarna defined,112
Samtidhi (trance)
quoted,193
Supreme Lord,glorification of
Sarat season,206
Sarira-bandha defined,149
Sarva-devamayo guru/;1
Sarva-dharman parityajya
Lord teaches,179
quoted,87
quoted,102,132,157
Sarva-karar;r.a-karar;r.am
SamliSrita ye pada-pallava-plavarh
Sarva-loka-mahesvaram
Samatvam defined,90
Sambhavamy atma-mayaya
verse quoted,75,175-176
verse quoted,28,169
quoted,29,265
Sampradaya-vihina ye
quoted,172
Sarhskaras defined, 88
Sanatana-dharma defined,311
quoted,235,301
quoted,331
quoted,128,165,224,236
verse quoted,25
Sarvopddhi-vinirmuktarh
quoted,73,103
verse quoted,191
on l(rl).a's advent,102
on Narada &
22,191
atiratha soldiers,106
on Siirasena,111
quoted,235
quoted,69,72,101
verse quoted,294
Scholars, academic
hearing from,forbidden,191
Salikaral).a,Lord
as Ananta (Sea),123,127
as Narayal).a's expansion,19
Scientists,material
General Index
Scientists, material
moon not visited by, 242
Self. See: Soul
Self-realization
bodily concept from lack of, 297, 300
as spiritual awakening, 137-138
See also: Devotional service; God con
quoted, 87
Sense control for producing progeny, 251
See also: Meditation; Samadhi; Yoga
Sense gratification
Bhagavad-gita misused for, 264
demon can kill for, 231,280
hellish result of, 149
kmw-katha precluded by,
22,24,25
228,229
to devotees, 103-104
material vs. spiritual, 68
See also: Devotional service
quoted, 185-186,257
verse quoted, 185-186
Sinful activities
Sinful activities
65,77
149,150
77
Siva, Lord
as annihilator, 42,228,229
as authority,
169
282
146
41,179
Soul
body based on, 223
body contrasted to,
292,293
65,66, 67, 68-70,
71,72,74,75,76,317-318
consciousness symptomizes, 68
as Lord's energy, 224
Supersoul contrasted to, 163
changes bodies, 64,
Sex life
vice,
403
150,342
conditioned; Transmigration
Soul, conditioned
compared to reflected luminary, 74
desires bind, 65
liberation of, 51,52
mahamdya bewilders,
51,llO
entities; Soul
as,
llO,
190,191,295
Srimad-Bhagavatam
404
Soul, liberated
(continued)
See also: Acaryas; Pure devotees;
master
Spiritual
Sound, transcendental
Spirit.
academic
Philosophers; Scholars,
Brahman (imper
Spiritual life
God con
Self-realization;
Spiritual master
Yoga
as necessary, 39
truth via, 218
Pure devotees
Sri gawja-marJ.{iala-bhumi,
tdmarJ.i
quoted, 54
Srimad-Bhtigavatam
See also: Srimad-Bhtigavatam, cited;
Srimad-Bhtigavatam, quotations
from
Srimad-Bhtigavatam, cited
on liberation by
kr-katha,
20
General Index
Srimad-Bhagavatam, quotations from
on Lord as shelter, 28
on Lord known by His mercy, 181
on Lord's abode, 140
on Lord's "birth," 138
on Srimad-Bhagavatam, 37
Srotavyadini rajendra
verse quoted, 132
Subhadra, 87
Subtle body, transmigration via, 66
See also: Bodily concept; Mind
Success
via Bhagavad-gita as it is, 264
political methods for, 281
three principles for, 159
Suffering
in India, 325,326
kmw-katha relieves, 36, 37,38
405
Suffering
of Vasudeva, 344
Sukadeva Gosvami
liberation of,168
Sun
as acyuta, 76
advent of
Srimad-Bhigavatam
406
Supreme Lord
advent of
(continued)
Supreme Lord
body of
in Brahmi's day,331
compared to awakening Kn11-a con
sciousness,128-129
demigods greeted,154,155,158,207,
208
demons deride,45
for devotee's deliverance & demon's
demi,93,95,193, 158,230
devotees with Kamsa awaited,122,123
as eternal,249-250
eternal life by knowing,250
His integrated parts accompany,130
in human form,266
by internal energy, 29
as triya 17
,
beauty of,183-184,187-188
color of,187-188,211,212,227,228
eternal,266
eyes of,169,175
transcendental,181
wonderful, 211,212,213
changeless,226
compared to sun,209-210
cows protected by,313
as creator,maintainer,annihilator,164,
226,227,228
as death personified,107,279
demigods under,43,87,164-166
demons killed by,95,228,229,230,245
devotees of. See: Devotees
devotional service reveals,128,176,182,
184,185,186,189,220,248
Dhruva blessed by,174-175
energy of
inconceivable,266
material & spiritual,133,221,222,
265-267
superior & inferior,162-163,221,224
all-pervading,217,218,220,221,222,
235,236
worshipers of,287
See also: Supreme Lord,potency of
as eternal,111
anger of,228-229
expansions of
accompany Him,141
Se-niga,269
two types of,87
See also: Kn11-a, Lord,expansions of;
Quadruple expansions
fear of death dispelled by,240, 241,242
form(s) of
for creation, maintenance & annihila
tion,227,228-229
devotee enchanted by,169,175
devotional rvice reveals,184
407
General Index
Supreme L:lrd
form(s) of
as eternal, 236
four-armed, 244,245,246
impersonalists misunderstand, 183,
184,186
living entity's form vs., 74-76
as transcendental, 181,182-184,185,
186-189,227,236
Supreme L:lrd
living entities supervised by, 293
lotus feet of
compared to boat, 168,169,172
marks on, 193
as sole shelter, 168,169,196
love for
Caitanya bestows, 256,257
in devotees, 187-189,273
universal, 279
Lord, body of
glorification of
in Vrndavana, 247,248
Q.a)
Madhava,176, 177
as Madhusiidana, 245
material elements from, 162,163
hearing about
as maya-manya, 106-108
devotees relish, l 05
mercy of
demons neglect, 45
pleases everyone, l 04
on devotee, 165,170-171,193
independent, 195,197
as transcendental, 185,186-189
as kala, 279
as Kesava, 108
knowledge from, 25
Q.a as, 22,44, 87,182-184,198,
261-262,331
liberation given by, 29,107-108,184,189
living entities as parts & parcels of,
152-153,194-195,196
194-195,196,205,210,212,
265-266
potency of
inconceivable, 210
Srimad-Bhigavatam
408
Supreme Lord
(continued)
potency of
Lord acts via,159,226
material & spiritual aspects of,50-52,
106-107,109-111
pleasure,194, 195,329
power from,140
present everywhere,111-112,130,155n,
200,209,210,217,218,220,221,
222
protection by
for cows & br4hmar;w.s, 313
via demigods,42
for devotees,123, 124,167,176-177,
178,243,301-302
via incarnations,197
as safest shelter,28,157,158
as Prenigarbha,260,262
qualities of,104-105
relationship with. See: Rasa (relationship
withl(nQa)
remembrance of,at death, 29
as sac-cid-4nanda-vigraha, 74, 209
sacrifice for satisfying,179
as seen by love,220-221
as Sea-niga,237
Siva under,164,165
as substantial reality,224
as
surrender to
as duty,166
Supreme Lord
as Upendra,261
as Vimana,261,262
as VAsudeva,39, 184
as VisvAtmA,123, 124,125,138
vow of,on His advent,155n,156, 158
as
vriikapi, 108
weapons of,2ll
as within & without,127-128,217,218,
220, 221,222
YogamAyA's orders from,126,127,129,
130,131,133,135-136
on Lord in heart,25
on Lord known by devotional service,128,
186
on Lord maintaining devotees,159
on Lord pervading universe,129-130
as liberation,75,103
as real religion,102-103
General Index
Supreme Lord, quotations from
150,228
90-91
175-176
on vaiSyas (agriculturalists),325
on worshiping devotees,334
Supreme Personality of Godhead. See: KrQ.a,
Lord; Supreme Lord; ViQ.u, Lord
Suras defined,206
Sarya-vamsa, 17
Sv4bhdviki jiid.na-bala-kriyd ca
quoted,l59
Svetadvipa,43
409
T
Srimad-Bhagavatam
410
quoted,48,70,76,77,80,241,256,287
verse quoted,98,189,250
verse quoted,165-166,235
quoted,153
Tedm evdnukampdrtham
verse quoted,124
Tedri'l nityt1bhiyuktt1nari'l
quoted,178
verse quoted,159
Tedri'l satata-yuktdndri'l
Uddhava,266
verse quoted,107
Time
Universe(s)
on Brahmaloka, 241,256
on higher planets,241,255-256
separates everyone,341
sun controlled by,239
TraigurJ.ya-vaya veda
quoted,181
Upackk$yanti te jnanari'l
Traivargikds te pura
verse quoted,218
quoted,24
Upackso hi murkhd1J.dri'l
]iiiinis;
Yogis
Transmigration of the soul
quoted,282
Upendra incarnation,49
Uragas, 285-286
Uttamaloka defined, l 03
Tri-guTJ.U defined,51
Trivarga defined,24
T1,1avarta,119
Tyaja durjana-sari'lsargari'l
verse quoted, 77
Vairagya-vidya nija-bhakti-yoga
quoted,73
411
General Index
Va4va-tQ$a(li, as cited or quoted
on KirtimAn, 113
on Siirasena, 111
VaiSyas (agriculturalists)
Vasudeva
See: Prayers, by
63,64,66,67,71,74,77
as transcendental, 76,248
VAsudeva,Lord, 108
Varihadeva,Lord,321
quoted, 334
Vasudeva
Kamsa imprisoned, 97
253,258,261-262,264-265,268
quoted, 180
verse quoted, 25
Vedic culture
Vedic injunction
on killing, 62,147
Srimad-Bhagavatam
412
incarnations
Vtabhyaham idam krtsnam
verse quoted,130
ViSva-ko5a dictionary,quoted on garbha, 59,
Vijayadhvaja Tirtha
cited on Mayadevi's names,134
ll2
ca
ki1Q.yate
quoted,153
Visvanatha Cakravarti 'fhakura,as cited or
quoted
on Karhsa's watchmen,277
on asuras, 114-ll5
143
on nivrtta-taraib, 103
on pauram dhama, 140
sciousness, 128-129
on i(rQa's appearance within Vasudeva,
139
on KrQa's fullness,102
on Narada Muni,ll4
on nondevotees as jaundiced, 188
on oril, 136
on Prsnigarbha in Treta-yuga,260
expansions of,124
vu-t'irtidhana defined,334
vu-bhakta smrto daivab
213
on yogamaya & mahamaya, 111
quoted, 154
Goloka,49,108,ll1
413
General Index
Vrndavana
Vrndavanam parityajya
quoted,54
Vr11-i dynasty,93, 94
Vrtrasura,177
in Vedic society,1 79
Vyadeva
Mahtibharata by,187
Srimad-Bhagavatam by,36,37
as transcendental,228
Vyavastiytitmikd buddh*
verse quoted,24
w
War,world preparing for,41
See also: Fighting,principles for; Kuruketra,Battlefield of
Western countries
ment in,66,146,313-314
killing of,condemned,62,147
in politics,281
by devotees,159,182
quoted,241
Yadubh* sa vyarudhyata
quoted,120
from moon-god,17
tapa caiva
quoted,179
Yamaraja as punisher,316
414
Srimad-Bhigavatam
Ya ni.Sd saroa-bhatdndrh
verse quoted, 137-138
Yanti deva-vratd devan
quoted, 101
Ya'ra bhagye thdke se dekhaye nirantare
verse quoted, 199
Yare dekha, tare kaha 'kmw'-upadesa
quoted, 20,192,264
verse quoted, 144
Yasmin sthito na dukhena
quoted, 153
Yasmin vijfUlte sarvam evarh vijootarh bhavati
quoted, 25,131
yasoda, mother
273
as Yasoda's daughter, 268, 271
Yogamayam samddi.Sat
quoted, 110
Yogamdyam up4Srita
quoted, 111
Yogamaya potency
mahdmaya vs., 110-111
nondevotees and, 106-107,184
spiritual function of, 51, 52,110-111,125
Yoga-nidrd defined, 138
Yogi(s)
highest, 68,125
Qa's devotees contrasted to, 142
meditate on the Lord, 142,169,243
See also: Devotees
Yogindm api saroerh
verse quoted, 68, 125
Yudhihira Maharaja, 325
Yuga, duration of, 241
;..
What
the
Bhagavatam,
reviewers
say
about
the
Srimad
Srimad-Bhagavatam
Bhagavatam
to
Professor of Sanskrit
Columbia University
"Srimad-Bhagavatam
is a valuable source ma
Roman
transliteration,
English
synonyms,
Book
Trust
editions
of
Srimad-Bhagavatam
is particularly
welcome."
Dr. John L. Mish